Selected quad for the lemma: kingdom_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
kingdom_n king_n power_n regal_a 2,103 5 11.1413 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A70760 Bishop Overall's convocation-book, MDCVI concerning the government of God's catholick church, and the kingdoms of the whole world.; Bishop Overall's convocation book Overall, John, 1560-1619.; Sancroft, William, 1617-1693. 1690 (1690) Wing O607; ESTC R2082 200,463 346

There are 41 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

the_o disorder_n and_o idolatry_n 26._o in_o those_o day_n be_v ascribe_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o the_o want_n of_o judge_n chief_z ruler_n or_o king_n among_o they_o who_o shall_v have_v reform_v those_o enormity_n not_o only_o in_o they_o but_o likewise_o in_o the_o priest_n themselves_o if_o they_o do_v not_o their_o duty_n especial_o in_o suppress_v of_o idolatry_n as_o they_o shall_v have_v do_v can._n xiii_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o the_o israelite_n fall_v not_o into_o many_o evil_n and_o disorder_n by_o be_v leave_v destitute_a of_o a_o certain_a chief_a governor_n after_o joshua_n death_n or_o that_o when_o god_n raise_v up_o judge_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v they_o the_o people_n consent_n be_v necessary_a thereunto_o or_o that_o the_o say_v judge_n be_v once_o appoint_v by_o god_n to_o those_o place_n receive_v their_o authority_n in_o that_o behalf_n from_o the_o people_n or_o that_o the_o fact_n of_o the_o sichemite_n may_v lawful_o be_v imitate_v by_o any_o christian_a people_n in_o so_o choose_v to_o themselves_o a_o king_n or_o judge_n according_a to_o their_o own_o humour_n or_o that_o the_o want_n of_o king_n prince_n and_o ruler_n in_o any_o country_n be_v not_o the_o mother_n of_o disorder_n and_o confusion_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n fourteen_o it_o be_v manifest_a in_o the_o scripture_n that_o moses_n direct_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v foresee_v that_o the_o time_n shall_v come_v when_o the_o israelite_n be_v quiet_o settle_v in_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n shall_v be_v govern_v by_o king_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o other_o nation_n 16._o and_o therefore_o almighty_a god_n do_v set_v down_o by_o moses_n pen_n the_o duty_n of_o all_o king_n and_o the_o rule_n whereby_o they_o ought_v to_o govern_v jacob_n also_o be_v illuminate_v by_o the_o same_o holy_a spirit_n do_v not_o only_o foretell_v nineteeen_o that_o it_o will_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n shall_v bear_v the_o sceptre_n and_o that_o the_o kingdom_n or_o government_n of_o judah_n shall_v be_v hold_v by_o succession_n according_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o other_o nation_n but_o likewise_o than_o the_o say_a sceptre_n or_o government_n 10._o shall_v not_o be_v take_v away_o from_o that_o tribe_n until_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n and_o it_o seem_v that_o the_o people_n be_v not_o altogether_o ignorant_a of_o this_o foresee_a alteration_n when_o find_v divers_a want_n and_o confusion_n among_o they_o after_o the_o death_n of_o one_o judge_n before_o god_n be_v please_v to_o appoint_v they_o another_o they_o first_o offer_v rash_o to_o gideon_n 22._o their_o prince_n that_o his_o child_n and_o offspring_n shall_v succeed_v he_o in_o that_o government_n and_o afterward_o be_v weary_a of_o depend_v upon_o god_n pleasure_n and_o mislike_v the_o rule_n of_o samuel_n son_n 5._o they_o urge_v he_o undutiful_o and_o unreasonable_o that_o they_o may_v have_v a_o king_n to_o rule_v over_o they_o as_o other_o nation_n have_v meaning_n thereby_o principal_o as_o we_o suppose_v that_o such_o their_o king_n may_v by_o succession_n govern_v they_o so_o as_o one_o be_v dead_a they_o may_v still_o have_v another_o 17._o we_o say_v that_o they_o urge_v samuel_n to_o this_o purpose_n undutiful_o and_o unreasonable_o and_o that_o thereupon_o saul_n be_v appoint_v to_o be_v their_o king_n because_o otherwise_o if_o they_o have_v expect_v god_n good_a pleasure_n and_o time_n and_o content_v themselves_o with_o his_o care_n over_o they_o in_o raise_v up_o when_o he_o think_v meet_v their_o judge_n to_o govern_v they_o they_o shall_v have_v find_v short_o after_o that_o the_o prophecy_n of_o jacob_n shall_v have_v be_v fulfil_v and_o that_o god_n will_v have_v give_v the_o sceptre_n of_o judah_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o david_n and_o of_o his_o posterity_n according_a to_o their_o desire_n can._n fourteen_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n do_v not_o grievous_o sin_n in_o be_v weary_a of_o god_n immediate_a election_n and_o appointment_n of_o their_o chief_a governor_n or_o that_o the_o people_n preposterous_a haste_n do_v any_o way_n prejudice_v the_o dignity_n and_o authority_n of_o saul_n regal_a power_n xx_o or_o afterward_o of_o the_o sceptre_n of_o judah_n or_o that_o the_o people_n then_o have_v in_o themselves_o any_o authority_n to_o set_v up_o a_o king_n over_o they_o for_o then_o they_o will_v not_o have_v be_v so_o earnest_a with_o samuel_n to_o make_v they_o a_o king_n or_o that_o after_o david_n advancement_n to_o that_o kingdom_n he_o be_v not_o as_o true_o call_v thereunto_o by_o god_n himself_o as_o aaron_n be_v to_o the_o priesthood_n or_o that_o david_n posterity_n have_v not_o by_o god_n ordinance_n as_o rightful_a a_o interest_n to_o succeed_v he_o in_o his_o say_a kingdom_n as_o either_o aaron_n son_n have_v to_o succeed_v he_o in_o the_o priesthood_n or_o moses_n joshua_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o judge_n notwithstanding_o that_o god_n himself_o do_v choose_v and_o name_v they_o particular_o have_v in_o their_o government_n or_o that_o the_o people_n then_o have_v any_o more_o authority_n to_o have_v withstand_v either_o david_n or_o any_o of_o his_o posterity_n from_o be_v their_o king_n than_o they_o have_v to_o have_v expel_v either_o moses_n or_o joshua_n or_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o judge_n who_o god_n by_o name_n do_v appoint_v to_o govern_v they_o he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xv._n it_o be_v manifest_a in_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o king_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n notwithstanding_o that_o they_o have_v their_o kingdom_n by_o succession_n be_v as_o strict_o bind_v to_o the_o observation_n of_o god_n law_n in_o their_o government_n as_o moses_n joshua_n or_o any_o other_o the_o judge_n or_o prince_n elect_a name_v and_o appoint_v by_o god_n himself_o they_o know_v well_o as_o jethro_n say_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o themselves_o to_o hear_v and_o decide_v all_o the_o cause_n and_o controversy_n that_o may_v happen_v in_o their_o kingdom_n xxi_o and_o by_o moses_n example_n be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o they_o may_v appoint_v and_o have_v judge_n to_o govern_v under_o they_o not_o only_o in_o every_o tribe_n but_o general_o over_o all_o their_o kingdom_n and_o therefore_o they_o do_v therein_o according_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o moses_n be_v approve_v by_o god_n himself_o no_o way_n either_o diminish_v their_o regal_a authority_n or_o purpose_v to_o puff_n up_o their_o subject_n with_o a_o conceit_n of_o any_o their_o own_o interest_n in_o the_o government_n which_o they_o have_v not_o from_o or_o under_o they_o but_o thereby_o order_v their_o kingdom_n with_o such_o a_o temperate_a and_o fatherly_a moderation_n as_o be_v most_o agreeable_a for_o the_o government_n of_o god_n people_n can._n xv._n if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o the_o king_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v not_o bind_v as_o strict_o to_o observe_v the_o law_n of_o god_n in_o their_o government_n as_o be_v moses_n joshua_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o judge_n or_o that_o they_o have_v any_o great_a liberty_n to_o do_v what_o they_o list_v than_o the_o other_o have_v or_o that_o they_o have_v no_o authority_n by_o the_o example_n of_o moses_n and_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o predecessor_n in_o their_o princely_a government_n to_o delegate_v and_o appoint_v such_o judge_n and_o governor_n under_o they_o as_o the_o other_o prince_n former_o under_o they_o have_v appoint_v or_o that_o because_o the_o say_a king_n do_v imitate_v the_o say_v prince_n in_o appoint_v such_o judge_n to_o assist_v they_o in_o the_o government_n of_o their_o kingdom_n therefore_o their_o government_n be_v to_o be_v judge_v rather_o aristocratical_a than_o true_o monarchical_a he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xvi_o when_o god_n first_o ordain_v civil_a magistrate_n and_o give_v they_o authority_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o people_n who_o they_o be_v to_o govern_v shall_v be_v subject_a unto_o they_o from_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n till_o moses_n time_n whilst_o the_o people_n of_o god_n that_o profess_v his_o true_a worship_n be_v govern_v by_o that_o authority_n xxij_o which_o be_v potestas_fw-la patria_fw-la and_o in_o a_o sort_n regius_fw-la their_o child_n and_o nephew_n be_v bind_v by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n to_o honour_n reverence_n and_o obey_v they_o god_n have_v raise_v up_o moses_n to_o deliver_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n out_o of_o egypt_n 27._o and_o to_o govern_v they_o afterward_o as_o their_o king_n or_o chief_a ruler_n they_o promise_v that_o they_o will_v hear_v he_o and_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n shall_v command_v they_o be_v in_o the_o wilderness_n 10._o his_o
serve_v or_o as_o st._n luke_n have_v christ_n word_n you_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o that_o be_v you_o shall_v not_o live_v as_o king_n upon_o the_o earth_n nor_o have_v such_o worldly_a estate_n as_o that_o thereby_o you_o may_v have_v occasion_n to_o vaunt_v in_o the_o world_n what_o great_a benefactor_n you_o have_v be_v in_o advance_v your_o follower_n to_o this_o or_o that_o dukedom_n according_a as_o great_a king_n and_o monarch_n be_v accustom_v to_o deal_v with_o their_o servant_n and_o principal_a subject_n but_o let_v the_o great_a among_o you_o be_v as_o the_o least_o and_o the_o chief_a as_o he_o that_o serve_v for_o who_o be_v great_a he_o that_o sit_v at_o the_o table_n or_o he_o that_o serve_v be_v not_o he_o that_o sit_v at_o the_o table_n and_o i_o be_o among_o you_o as_o he_o that_o serve_v by_o which_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n it_o be_v very_o manifest_a how_o far_o he_o be_v from_o challenge_v to_o himself_o any_o worldly_a kingdom_n and_o how_o much_o his_o apostle_n be_v deceive_v in_o apprehend_v what_o great_a man_n they_o shall_v become_v by_o be_v his_o follower_n and_o disciple_n to_o this_o purpose_n much_o more_o may_v be_v here_o allege_v by_o we_o as_o also_o it_o will_v not_o be_v forget_v what_o we_o have_v before_o observe_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n tend_v to_o the_o same_o effect_n in_o as_o much_o as_o christ_n have_v make_v himself_o subject_a to_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o five_o commandment_n which_o tie_v he_o as_o well_o to_o be_v a_o subject_a unto_o the_o emperor_n under_o who_o he_o be_v bear_v as_o to_o the_o obedience_n of_o his_o parent_n do_v thereby_o show_v himself_o to_o be_v no_o temporal_a monarch_n howbeit_o all_o this_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v some_o so_o much_o addict_v in_o these_o day_n unto_o the_o say_v erroneous_a opinion_n of_o the_o jew_n as_o for_o the_o advancement_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n they_o will_v needs_o have_v christ_n to_o have_v be_v here_o upon_o the_o earth_n a_o temporal_a king_n affirm_v that_o upon_o his_o nativity_n all_o the_o king_n in_o the_o world_n lose_v their_o regal_a power_n and_o authority_n all_o their_o kingdom_n be_v devolve_v unto_o he_o and_o that_o they_o can_v no_o long_o possess_v they_o by_o any_o right_n interest_n or_o title_n until_o they_o have_v again_o resume_v they_o from_o he_o as_o he_o be_v man_n and_o forsake_v their_o ancient_a tenor_n whereby_o they_o have_v hold_v they_o of_o he_o as_o he_o be_v god_n insomuch_o as_o some_o of_o they_o say_v in_o effect_n that_o neither_o augustus_n caesar_n nor_o tiberius_n his_o successor_n be_v lawful_a emperor_n from_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n birth_n for_o above_o the_o space_n of_o thirty_o year_n until_o our_o saviour_n have_v require_v the_o jew_n to_o pay_v tribute_n to_o caesar_n as_o if_o in_o so_o do_v tiberius_n have_v again_o receive_v thereby_o his_o former_a right_n to_o the_o empire_n and_o that_o thereupon_o he_o be_v from_o that_o time_n forward_o to_o hold_v it_o of_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v man._n in_o which_o erroneous_a conceit_n these_o man_n proceed_v further_a than_o ever_o the_o jew_n or_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o weakness_n do_v for_o the_o jew_n never_o imagine_v of_o their_o messiah_n that_o when_o he_o come_v into_o the_o world_n he_o shall_v abolish_v all_o civil_a government_n among_o the_o gentile_n and_o be_v a_o temporal_a king_n to_o rule_v all_o nation_n or_o that_o as_o many_o sovereign_a king_n and_o prince_n as_o shall_v from_o that_o time_n forward_o desire_v to_o rule_v their_o subject_n by_o any_o lawful_a power_n and_o authority_n must_v receive_v and_o hold_v the_o same_o from_o the_o say_a jew_n their_o temporal_a king_n but_o do_v restrain_v their_o conceit_n within_o more_o narrow_a bound_n think_v that_o their_o messiah_n shall_v not_o have_v such_o intermeddle_v with_o the_o gentile_n but_o only_o restore_v the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n which_o have_v for_o a_o long_a time_n be_v miserable_o shake_v and_o rend_v in_o piece_n and_o live_v in_o that_o country_n among_o they_o in_o a_o much_o more_o glorious_a form_n and_o state_n than_o any_o of_o their_o king_n before_o he_o have_v do_v and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o these_o the_o say_v person_n have_v inconsiderate_o so_o far_o overrun_v the_o jew_n in_o their_o folly_n be_v possess_v nevertheless_o with_o some_o imagination_n no_o doubt_n that_o because_o the_o pope_n do_v either_o applaud_v or_o wink_v at_o their_o proceed_n they_o may_v in_o time_n make_v it_o probable_a to_o the_o simple_a sort_n who_o when_o force_n be_v to_o be_v use_v do_v bear_v the_o great_a sway_n that_o as_o all_o emperor_n and_o king_n forsooth_o hold_v their_o kingdom_n from_o christ_n as_o he_o then_o be_v and_o still_o be_v man_n so_o ought_v they_o now_o in_o these_o day_n to_o hold_v they_o of_o the_o pope_n in_o that_o if_o man_n may_v safe_o believe_v they_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v as_o they_o say_v after_o his_o ascension_n bestow_v all_o such_o worldly_a dominion_n upon_o st._n peter_n and_o consequent_o upon_o his_o successor_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o now_o all_o worldly_a principality_n be_v they_o and_o must_v be_v hold_v of_o they_o as_o they_o be_v before_o of_o christ_n after_o his_o incarnation_n by_o as_o many_o king_n and_o prince_n as_o desire_v to_o hold_v their_o kingdom_n by_o any_o right_a title_n but_o these_o be_v man_n not_o to_o be_v fear_v for_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n of_o they_o they_o be_v all_o of_o they_o in_o effect_n either_o but_o gross_a and_o unlearned_a canonist_n or_o else_o but_o new_a upstart_n and_o sottish_a nerians_n and_o of_o great_a affinity_n with_o the_o canonist_n who_o meaning_n as_o it_o seem_v to_o outstrip_v the_o jesuit_n do_v labour_n as_o much_o to_o make_v the_o pope_n a_o temporal_a monarch_n as_o the_o jesuit_n have_v do_v for_o his_o pretend_a spiritual_a sovereignty_n who_o endeavour_n be_v altogether_o as_o we_o suppose_v to_o be_v contemn_v in_o that_o both_o the_o sort_n of_o they_o as_o well_o canonist_n as_o nerians_n be_v more_o voluminous_a in_o their_o write_n then_o substantial_a fill_v they_o principal_o with_o very_o idle_a and_o ridiculous_a canon_n and_o decree_n of_o the_o pope_n own_o make_v and_o have_v no_o true_a feel_n or_o sense_n of_o divinity_n do_v handle_v the_o scripture_n when_o they_o have_v leisure_n to_o come_v unto_o they_o with_o so_o foul_a and_o unwashed_a hand_n as_o that_o their_o master_n either_o be_v or_o aught_o to_o be_v ashamed_a of_o they_o in_o that_o he_o permit_v their_o so_o absurd_a book_n to_o come_v abroad_o into_o the_o world_n beside_o it_o will_v not_o a_o little_a hinder_v their_o credit_n if_o it_o make_v they_o not_o a_o scorn_n to_o all_o posterity_n even_o among_o such_o man_n as_o have_v otherwise_o make_v themselves_o vassal_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n because_o the_o say_a jesuit_n and_o some_o other_o not_o to_o have_v be_v despise_v for_o their_o learning_n whilst_o they_o have_v strive_v to_o advance_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a have_v themselves_o in_o a_o manner_n break_v the_o neck_n of_o his_o fondly-conceited_n temporal_a monarchy_n some_o of_o the_o chief_a among_o they_o affirm_v very_o peremptory_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n as_o man_n be_v never_o a_o temporal_a king_n upon_o earth_n nor_o ever_o have_v any_o such_o temporal_a authority_n 5._o or_o government_n as_o do_v appertain_v unto_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n we_o will_v set_v down_o some_o word_n of_o one_o that_o be_v of_o especial_a authority_n among_o they_o not_o because_o we_o intend_v to_o ground_v any_o thing_n upon_o they_o but_o for_o that_o they_o be_v true_a and_o may_v perhaps_o be_v of_o more_o force_n than_o we_o be_v like_a to_o be_v with_o some_o kind_n of_o people_n the_o rectify_v of_o who_o heart_n in_o the_o truth_n we_o tender_v as_o much_o as_o we_o do_v our_o own_o christ_n say_v he_o do_v not_o take_v kingdom_n from_o they_o who_o they_o be_v for_o christ_n come_v not_o to_o destroy_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v well_o settle_v but_o to_o make_v they_o better_o therefore_o when_o a_o king_n be_v become_v a_o christian_n he_o do_v not_o lose_v his_o earthly_a kingdom_n but_o procure_v a_o new_a interest_n to_o a_o kingdom_n that_o be_v eternal_a otherwise_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v hurtful_a to_o king_n and_o grace_n shall_v destroy_v nature_n and_o again_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n whilst_o he_o live_v upon_o the_o earth_n neither_o do_v nor_o will_v receive_v any_o temporal_a dominion_n and_o again_o i_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v always_o as_o the_o son_n of_o god_n a_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o all_o creature_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o his_o father_n
be_v but_o this_o eternal_a and_o divine_a kingdom_n do_v not_o abollish_v the_o dominion_n of_o men._n again_o i_o affirm_v not_o say_v he_o that_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n can_v not_o though_o he_o will_v and_o have_v think_v it_o expedient_a for_o he_o have_v receive_v regal_a authority_n but_o yet_o i_o say_v that_o he_o will_v not_o and_o therefore_o that_o he_o do_v not_o receive_v nor_o have_v not_o only_o the_o execution_n of_o any_o lordship_n or_o regality_n but_o neither_o the_o authority_n or_o power_n of_o any_o temporal_a kingdom_n again_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n have_v no_o temporal_a kingdom_n neither_o by_o inheritance_n nor_o by_o election_n nor_o by_o conquest_n nor_o by_o any_o special_a gift_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o he_o conclude_v that_o christ_n have_v no_o temporal_a kingdom_n at_o all_o because_o every_o such_o kingdom_n be_v get_v by_o one_o of_o the_o say_v four_o mean_n again_o say_v he_o christ_n never_o use_v in_o this_o world_n any_o regal_a power_n he_o come_v to_o minister_v and_o not_o to_o be_v minister_v unto_o to_o be_v judge_v and_o not_o to_o judge_v and_o again_o regal_a authority_n be_v neither_o necessary_a nor_o profitable_a to_o christ_n but_o plain_o idle_a and_o unprofitable_a for_o the_o end_n of_o his_o come_n into_o the_o world_n be_v the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n but_o to_o this_o end_n temporal_a power_n be_v not_o necessary_a but_o only_o spiritual_a last_o all_o the_o place_n of_o scripture_n almost_o say_v he_o where_o be_v a_o treaty_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n ought_v necessary_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o his_o spiritual_a and_o eternal_a kingdom_n and_o therefore_o it_o can_v be_v deduce_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n that_o christ_n have_v any_o temporal_a kingdom_n so_o as_o in_o this_o man_n judgement_n neither_o st._n peter_n for_o his_o time_n nor_o since_o any_o of_o his_o successor_n do_v ever_o receive_v any_o temporal_a kingdom_n from_o christ_n he_o himself_o be_v never_o possess_v of_o any_o as_o he_o be_v man_n either_o to_o retain_v in_o their_o own_o hand_n or_o to_o commit_v the_o execution_n of_o they_o as_o in_o their_o right_n to_o other_o king_n and_o temporal_a monarch_n but_o to_o omit_v the_o further_a prosecution_n of_o this_o loyolist_n say_v position_n deliver_v true_o in_o this_o point_n more_o at_o large_a and_o prove_v by_o sundry_a argument_n in_o his_o book_n quote_v by_o we_o because_o he_o be_v a_o man_n though_o he_o be_v a_o cardinal_n and_o of_o great_a estimation_n with_o his_o own_o society_n who_o credit_n seem_v to_o decay_v especial_o with_o the_o say_a canonist_n and_o other_o of_o that_o like_a crew_n for_o if_o the_o rest_n shall_v hereafter_o proceed_v with_o he_o as_o one_o of_o they_o have_v already_o do_v by_o pervert_v the_o whole_a drift_n of_o his_o disputation_n in_o that_o behalf_n very_o childish_o and_o gross_o he_o will_v be_v drive_v ever_o it_o be_v long_o to_o range_v himself_o in_o the_o troop_n of_o some_o who_o be_v false_o suppose_v heretic_n in_o that_o the_o say_v grave_a canonist_n be_v so_o courageous_a as_o he_o dare_v to_o adventure_v the_o pronounce_v of_o a_o curse_n of_o the_o great_a nature_n against_o he_o by_o name_n even_o anathema_n sit_v and_o therefore_o we_o will_v clear_v our_o hand_n of_o he_o and_o draw_v to_o a_o end_n in_o this_o matter_n leave_v the_o conclusion_n of_o it_o unto_o christ_n himself_o who_o know_v his_o own_o estate_n when_o he_o live_v here_o in_o the_o world_n as_o well_o as_o any_o canonist_n either_o by_o birth_n of_o milan_n naples_n or_o rome_n or_o of_o any_o other_o city_n or_o country_n whatsoever_o it_o be_v true_a that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n as_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v bear_v be_v a_o spiritual_a king_n not_o only_o over_o the_o jew_n but_o also_o over_o all_o nation_n and_o therefore_o when_o at_o the_o time_n of_o his_o arraignment_n before_o pilate_n though_o in_o scorn_n the_o jew_n term_v he_o king_n and_o that_o indeed_o he_o can_v not_o true_o have_v deny_v it_o yet_o he_o do_v not_o equivocate_v therein_o but_o confess_v unto_o they_o what_o manner_n of_o king_n he_o be_v for_o pilate_n say_v unto_o he_o be_v thou_o the_o king_n of_o the_o jew_n 36._o and_o tell_v he_o that_o the_o jew_n and_o high-priest_n have_v deliver_v he_o into_o his_o hand_n jesus_n answer_v thus_o my_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n if_o my_o kingdom_n be_v of_o this_o world_n my_o servant_n will_v sure_o fight_v that_o i_o shall_v not_o be_v deliver_v to_o the_o jew_n but_o now_o be_v my_o kingdom_n not_o from_o hence_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v i_o be_o no_o temporal_a king_n nor_o have_v any_o temporal_a kingdom_n in_o this_o world_n for_o if_o i_o have_v my_o subject_n no_o doubt_n will_v never_o have_v suffer_v i_o to_o come_v to_o this_o distress_n or_o if_o it_o have_v be_v my_o hap_n so_o to_o have_v be_v dishonour_v as_o now_o i_o be_o they_o will_v out_o of_o all_o doubt_n have_v fight_v on_o my_o behalf_n as_o all_o dutiful_a subject_n be_v bind_v to_o do_v when_o the_o person_n of_o their_o sovereign_n shall_v be_v in_o any_o danger_n but_o my_o kingdom_n be_v of_o another_o nature_n it_o be_v no_o temporal_a kingdom_n either_o of_o this_o world_n that_o be_v such_o a_o kingdom_n as_o those_o who_o be_v temporal_a king_n do_v possess_v or_o from_o hence_o that_o be_v my_o kingdom_n require_v no_o worldly_a assistance_n the_o world_n have_v give_v i_o no_o subject_n neither_o have_v i_o any_o worldly_a estate_n or_o possession_n so_o as_o it_o may_v be_v affirm_v true_o either_o of_o i_o or_o of_o my_o kingdom_n that_o either_o for_o the_o dignity_n of_o my_o person_n or_o the_o strengthen_n of_o my_o government_n i_o have_v any_o thing_n hence_o that_o be_v from_o the_o world_n can._n ii_o and_o therefore_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v affirm_v under_o colour_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n either_o that_o the_o jew_n do_v not_o err_v in_o conceive_v that_o their_o messiah_n when_o he_o come_v into_o the_o world_n shall_v as_o a_o temporal_a monarch_n reign_n among_o they_o or_o that_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o be_v not_o somewhat_o taint_v with_o such_o like_a imagination_n or_o that_o christ_n answer_n to_o his_o say_a apostle_n do_v not_o sufficient_o show_v unto_o they_o that_o he_o come_v not_o into_o the_o world_n to_o erect_v for_o himself_o a_o temporal_a kingdom_n and_o that_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o to_o expect_v from_o he_o such_o worldly_a preferment_n as_o they_o have_v dream_v of_o or_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o that_o he_o be_v make_v man_n do_v by_o his_o bless_a nativity_n deprive_v all_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n in_o the_o world_n of_o that_o power_n and_o authority_n which_o he_o have_v former_o give_v unto_o they_o as_o he_o be_v god_n or_o that_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n be_v by_o his_o birth_n make_v a_o temporal_a king_n over_o all_o the_o world_n or_o that_o all_o temporal_a prince_n and_o sovereign_a king_n be_v thenceforth_o bind_v to_o hold_v their_o several_a country_n and_o kingdom_n no_o more_o under_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v god_n but_o as_o be_v man_n he_o be_v become_v a_o temporal_a monarch_n over_o all_o nation_n or_o that_o the_o emperor_n tiberius_n who_o then_o reign_v do_v govern_v the_o empire_n for_o the_o space_n of_o above_o fifteen_o year_n without_o any_o lawful_a authority_n until_o our_o saviour_n christ_n will_v the_o jew_n to_o give_v unto_o caesar_n those_o thing_n that_o be_v caesar_n or_o that_o christ_n have_v willing_o undertake_v for_o our_o sake_n the_o fulfil_n of_o all_o the_o law_n and_o consequent_o of_o the_o five_o commandment_n do_v not_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o his_o office_n to_o obey_v the_o emperor_n upon_o who_o he_o have_v as_o he_o be_v god_n bestow_v such_o lawful_a authority_n as_o do_v appertain_v unto_o his_o government_n or_o that_o either_o christ_n fact_n in_o pay_v of_o tribute_n or_o his_o word_n in_o willing_a the_o jew_n to_o give_v unto_o caesar_n those_o thing_n that_o be_v caesar_n do_v then_o import_v that_o neither_o obedience_n tribute_n custom_n nor_o any_o other_o duty_n of_o subjection_n do_v until_o that_o time_n belong_v to_o the_o emperor_n as_o be_v thitherto_o by_o christ_n birth_n deprive_v of_o all_o his_o regal_a authority_n or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o great_a impiety_n in_o any_o political_a respect_n whatsoever_o for_o any_o man_n to_o maintain_v when_o christ_n say_v his_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n that_o it_o be_v a_o worldly_a and_o temporal_a kingdom_n or_o when_o christ_n say_v his_o kingdom_n be_v not_o from_o hence_o that_o it_o be_v notwithstanding_o as_o a_o worldly_a kingdom_n from_o
profession_n of_o christ_n so_o as_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o these_o part_n of_o the_o world_n may_v more_o true_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o they_o than_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o have_v be_v the_o chief_a author_n and_o occasion_n of_o many_o incredible_a mischief_n now_o last_o and_o for_o conclusion_n of_o this_o point_n have_v not_o satan_n with_o all_o power_n and_o sign_n and_o lie_v wonder_n so_o inveigle_v and_o seduce_v the_o heart_n and_o mind_n of_o the_o adherent_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n as_o that_o by_o degree_n they_o leave_v the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v therefore_o give_v over_o by_o god_n unto_o such_o strong_a delusion_n 11._o that_o they_o shall_v believe_v lie_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v among_o many_o other_o of_o the_o gross_a error_n maintain_v by_o they_o we_o may_v marvel_v at_o this_o that_o ever_o they_o dare_v take_v upon_o they_o in_o these_o time_n of_o so_o great_a light_n to_o write_v and_o defend_v it_o with_o such_o resolution_n and_o confidence_n that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a commonwealth_n as_o they_o term_v it_o can_v be_v perfect_a nor_o attain_v her_o spiritual_a end_n except_o the_o pope_n may_v have_v the_o say_v temporal_a power_n and_o authority_n to_o depose_v king_n consider_v how_o far_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o true_a mean_n and_o armour_n that_o christ_n our_o spiritual_a king_n have_v indeed_o ordain_v and_o appoint_v for_o the_o edification_n and_o defence_n of_o this_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n and_o for_o the_o attainment_n of_o the_o supernatural_a and_o right_a end_n and_o beauty_n of_o it_o be_v repugnant_a to_o these_o their_o carnal_a and_o worldly_a conceit_n touch_v the_o true_a nature_n of_o the_o church_n and_o spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n we_o have_v before_o speak_v and_o the_o true_a spiritual_a end_n of_o the_o church_n be_v by_o teach_v the_o way_n of_o truth_n to_o bring_v as_o many_o as_o possible_o they_o can_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o their_o salvation_n through_o christ_n so_o as_o by_o faith_n they_o may_v become_v true_a member_n of_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v the_o mean_v ordain_v for_o that_o purpose_n do_v contain_v the_o full_a duty_n and_o office_n of_o all_o bishop_n and_o ecclesiastical_a minister_n who_o be_v furnish_v by_o christ_n neither_o with_o temporal_a sword_n nor_o imperial_a authority_n to_o depose_v king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n but_o aught_o to_o carry_v themselves_o towards_o all_o man_n especial_o towards_o king_n and_o prince_n if_o they_o be_v either_o pagan_n or_o enemy_n to_o religion_n as_o christ_n himself_o and_o his_o apostle_n do_v by_o preach_v and_o pray_v for_o they_o by_o humility_n and_o patience_n to_o endure_v whatsoever_o punishment_n shall_v be_v think_v fit_a to_o be_v impose_v upon_o they_o for_o do_v of_o their_o duty_n and_o never_o to_o intermit_v such_o their_o pain_n and_o diligence_n to_o the_o end_n that_o if_o it_o please_v god_n to_o bless_v those_o their_o ministerial_a so_o great_a labour_n their_o auditor_n of_o all_o sort_n private_a person_n king_n and_o prince_n may_v be_v bring_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o so_o satan_n be_v expel_v out_o of_o their_o heart_n christ_n by_o faith_n may_v reign_v in_o they_o to_o the_o effect_n of_o which_o so_o great_a and_o so_o divine_a a_o alteration_n and_o change_v in_o man_n soul_n there_o be_v no_o worldly_a force_n nor_o temporal_a sword_n which_o will_v serve_v the_o turn_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o this_o matter_n do_v write_v in_o this_o sort_n etc._n the_o weapon_n of_o our_o warfare_n be_v not_o carnal_a as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v we_o do_v not_o come_v with_o troop_n of_o man_n to_o promote_v the_o spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n but_o with_o weapon_n of_o another_o nature_n with_o the_o glad_a riding_n of_o the_o gospel_n with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n to_o all_o believer_n and_o with_o the_o furniture_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o weapon_n be_v not_o weak_a but_o mighty_a through_o god_n and_o able_a to_o cast_v down_o hold_v that_o be_v all_o the_o carnal_a force_n of_o man_n all_o principality_n and_o power_n that_o shall_v presume_v to_o rise_v up_o against_o christ_n and_o through_o the_o assurance_n and_o experience_n which_o both_o st._n paul_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v in_o the_o force_n of_o these_o weapon_n he_o say_v further_a that_o with_o they_o they_o overthrow_v council_n and_o every_o high_a thing_n that_o do_v exalt_v itself_o against_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o that_o they_o bring_v into_o captivity_n all_o imagination_n or_o understanding_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n away_o then_o with_o the_o pope_n carnal_a weapon_n and_o with_o all_o their_o illusion_n and_o juggle_n that_o seek_v to_o uphold_v they_o for_o such_o weapon_n be_v never_o ordain_v by_o christ_n for_o his_o apostolical_a warfare_n can._n ix_o and_o therefore_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v affirm_v under_o colour_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n either_o that_o the_o external_a calling_n in_o this_o world_n of_o those_o man_n as_o minister_n and_o schoolmaster_n that_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o the_o information_n of_o man_n mind_n and_o soul_n be_v superior_a and_o to_o be_v prefer_v in_o honour_n and_o worldly_a dignity_n before_o the_o calling_n of_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n or_o that_o because_o health_n be_v better_a and_o more_o to_o be_v desire_v in_o this_o life_n than_o any_o worldly_a preferment_n therefore_o the_o call_v of_o physician_n who_o be_v ordain_v for_o the_o health_n of_o man_n body_n aught_o to_o be_v superior_a to_o all_o other_o worldly_a calling_n or_o that_o the_o regal_a and_o political_a power_n of_o the_o king_n when_o it_o be_v part_n of_o a_o christian_a commonwealth_n be_v thereby_o bring_v into_o great_a servitude_n and_o thraldom_n than_o be_v the_o regal_a and_o political_a state_n of_o ethnic_a prince_n when_o the_o same_o be_v no_o part_n of_o a_o christian_a kingdom_n or_o that_o to_o prefer_v the_o ecclesiastical_a state_n for_o worldly_a authority_n before_o the_o state_n of_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n be_v not_o in_o effect_n to_o prefer_v the_o humble_a estate_n of_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n live_v here_o upon_o the_o earth_n before_o his_o glorious_a estate_n after_o his_o ascension_n and_o before_o the_o glory_n and_o majesty_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n or_o that_o any_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n which_o the_o apostle_n ordain_v do_v either_o free_v they_o or_o any_o of_o their_o successor_n from_o subjection_n to_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o to_o their_o temporal_a authority_n or_o that_o st._n peter_n be_v a_o apostle_n and_o so_o subject_a to_o the_o civil_a sword_n of_o temporal_a authority_n can_v lawful_o by_o any_o indirect_a device_n challenge_v any_o temporal_a power_n and_o dominion_n over_o king_n and_o prince_n for_o that_o have_v be_v to_o have_v extort_a the_o temporal_a sword_n out_o of_o their_o hand_n to_o who_o it_o appertain_v and_o to_o have_v incur_v again_o the_o commination_n of_o his_o master_n when_o he_o tell_v he_o how_o all_o that_o take_v the_o sword_n shall_v perish_v with_o the_o sword_n or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o most_o profane_a impiety_n tend_v altogether_o to_o the_o discredit_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o any_o man_n to_o hold_v that_o st._n peter_n and_o st._n paul_n have_v so_o instruct_v the_o christian_n in_o their_o time_n as_o that_o they_o know_v if_o they_o have_v be_v able_a they_o may_v without_o offence_n to_o god_n have_v depose_v nero_n from_o his_o empire_n or_o that_o the_o christian_n in_o tertullian_n time_n when_o they_o profess_v that_o notwithstanding_o their_o number_n and_o force_n be_v so_o great_a as_o they_o have_v be_v able_a to_o have_v distress_v very_o great_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o emperor_n be_v then_o persecutor_n they_o may_v not_o so_o do_v because_o christ_n their_o master_n have_v teach_v they_o otherwise_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a warrant_n for_o all_o true_a christian_n to_o detest_v those_o man_n in_o these_o day_n and_o for_o ever_o hereafter_o who_o contrary_a to_o the_o example_n of_o the_o say_v christian_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v then_o teach_v they_o do_v endeavour_n to_o persuade_v they_o when_o they_o shall_v have_v sufficient_a force_n to_o rebel_n against_o such_o king_n and_o emperor_n at_o the_o pope_n commandment_n and_o to_o thrust_v they_o from_o their_o kingdom_n and_o empire_n or_o that_o this_o devilish_a doctrine_n of_o animate_v subject_n to_o rebellion_n when_o they_o be_v able_a against_o their_o
earth_n be_v the_o lord_n and_o all_o that_o therein_o be_v 1._o the_o round_a world_n and_o all_o that_o dwell_v therein_o 5._o whereupon_o he_o be_v call_v ordinary_o 35._o in_o the_o old_a testament_n dominator_fw-la dominus_fw-la the_o lord_n of_o host_n the_o god_n and_o possessor_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n so_o as_o he_o be_v the_o universal_a lord_n and_o ruler_n over_o all_o the_o world_n the_o whole_a world_n be_v his_o universal_a kingdom_n in_o the_o government_n whereof_o he_o ever_o use_v the_o ministry_n of_o civil_a magistrate_n as_o well_o in_o other_o country_n xc_o as_o among_o his_o own_o peculiar_a people_n of_o israel_n without_o any_o desert_n of_o they_o but_o as_o in_o his_o heavenly_a providente_fw-la he_o think_v it_o most_o convenient_a 5._o i_o have_v make_v say_v he_o the_o earth_n the_o man_n and_o the_o beast_n that_o be_v upon_o the_o ground_n and_o have_v give_v it_o to_o who_o it_o please_v i_o 32._o and_o again_o the_o prophet_n daniel_n tell_v we_o that_o god_n change_v the_o time_n and_o season_n that_o he_o have_v power_n and_o bear_v rule_v over_o the_o kingdom_n of_o man_n that_o he_o take_v away_o king_n and_o set_v up_o king_n and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o god_n of_o heaven_n 8._o who_o give_v unto_o nabuchadnezzar_n so_o great_a a_o kingdom_n power_n strength_n and_o glory_n as_o than_o he_o have_v to_o rule_v with_o majesty_n and_o honour_n a_o very_a great_a empire_n in_o respect_n whereof_o although_o king_n and_o prince_n may_v have_v be_v satisfy_v with_o the_o title_n of_o lieutenant_n or_o vicegerent_n in_o earth_n to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n yet_o he_o do_v communicate_v and_o impart_v so_o much_o of_o his_o power_n authority_n and_o dignity_n unto_o they_o as_o he_o be_v content_a to_o style_v they_o with_o his_o own_o name_n i_o have_v say_v you_o be_v god_n and_o the_o child_n of_o the_o most_o high_a howbeit_o for_o all_o their_o say_a dignity_n and_o greatness_n he_o do_v not_o leave_v they_o at_o liberty_n to_o do_v what_o they_o list_v but_o hold_v himself_o the_o helm_n of_o every_o kingdom_n xci_o and_o use_v their_o service_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o be_v they_o good_a or_o bad_a and_o their_o designment_n holy_a or_o wicked_a he_o ever_o make_v they_o the_o executioner_n of_o his_o own_o just_a judgement_n will_n and_o good_a pleasure_n according_a as_o he_o be_v mind_v either_o to_o bless_v or_o to_o punish_v any_o kingdom_n people_n or_o country_n in_o regard_n of_o which_o his_o may_v providence_n and_o wisdom_n whereby_o he_o rule_v they_o after_o that_o sort_n he_o be_v call_v the_o lord_n of_o lord_n the_o king_n of_o glory_n and_o the_o god_n of_o god_n 1._o that_o be_v of_o king_n prince_n judge_n and_o ruler_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o it_o may_v not_o here_o be_v omit_v which_o indeed_o arise_v of_o the_o premise_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o dispose_v of_o the_o government_n under_o he_o of_o the_o earth_n do_v not_o appoint_v any_o one_o man_n to_o be_v the_o sole_a monarch_n of_o the_o world_n as_o from_o who_o all_o other_o kingdom_n government_n king_n and_o prince_n shall_v receive_v their_o direction_n and_o unto_o who_o they_o shall_v be_v subject_a it_o be_v true_a that_o adam_n whilst_o he_o live_v be_v the_o chief_a governor_n under_o the_o son_n of_o god_n xcij_o over_o all_o his_o own_o offspring_n and_o that_o noah_n likewise_o during_o his_o life_n have_v the_o like_a authority_n but_o when_o after_o the_o flood_n the_o issue_n of_o sem_fw-mi cham_fw-mi and_o japhet_n grow_v to_o a_o great_a people_n their_o father_n noah_n do_v not_o commit_v to_o any_o one_o of_o they_o the_o government_n of_o the_o rest_n and_o of_o all_o of_o their_o posterity_n but_o divide_v the_o whole_a world_n among_o they_o three_o and_o from_o they_o no_o one_o sole_a monarch_n or_o monarchy_n but_o many_o king_n principality_n kingdom_n and_o government_n by_o god_n providence_n have_v descend_v it_o be_v more_o than_o probable_a that_o if_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v be_v please_v to_o have_v commit_v to_o any_o one_o man_n a_o government_n of_o so_o large_a a_o extent_n he_o will_v have_v trust_v his_o servant_n king_n david_n with_o it_o be_v a_o man_n according_a to_o his_o own_o heart_n but_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n wherein_o david_n reign_v be_v bound_v within_o the_o strait_a limit_n assign_v to_o the_o twelve_o tribe_n and_o such_o other_o king_n as_o swerve_v after_o that_o time_n from_o david_n mild_a and_o temperate_a government_n and_o take_v upon_o they_o the_o title_n of_o monarchy_n have_v enlarge_v their_o kingdom_n by_o injury_n and_o oppression_n of_o their_o neighbour_n where_o in_o their_o pride_n and_o greediness_n but_o the_o scourge_v and_o rod_n of_o god_n indignation_n xciij_o and_o have_v their_o fatal_a end_n according_o so_o as_o where_o the_o prophet_n daniel_n 38._o speak_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o nabuchadnezzar_n call_v he_o king_n of_o king_n and_o say_v that_o he_o be_v the_o ruler_n over_o all_o place_n wherein_o the_o child_n of_o man_n dwell_v 2._o and_o cyrus_n the_o king_n of_o persia_n affirm_v that_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o heaven_n have_v give_v he_o all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v apparent_a both_o by_o the_o scripture_n and_o other_o history_n that_o neither_o of_o they_o both_o have_v the_o ten_o part_n of_o the_o world_n under_o their_o jurisdiction_n and_o that_o there_o be_v very_o many_o king_n who_o have_v absolute_a government_n in_o their_o kingdom_n and_o be_v no_o way_n subject_n unto_o they_o the_o say_v place_n of_o necessity_n must_v receive_v this_o exposition_n that_o either_o they_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v hyperbolical_o whereby_o to_o express_v the_o greatness_n of_o a_o thing_n it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v big_a than_o it_o be_v or_o by_o a_o synecdoche_n which_o use_v the_o whole_a sometime_o for_o a_o part_n or_o according_a to_o the_o usual_a phrase_n of_o the_o scripture_n where_o all_o be_v often_o take_v for_o many_o or_o else_o both_o daniel_n and_o cyrus_n speak_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o chaldaean_n and_o persian_n who_o to_o extol_v the_o greatness_n of_o their_o king_n and_o the_o better_a to_o please_v they_o do_v peradventure_o so_o enlarge_v and_o amplify_v the_o style_n placet_fw-la can._n xxxv_o xclv_n if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v not_o the_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o world_n or_o that_o he_o do_v not_o appoint_v under_o he_o divers_a king_n prince_n and_o civil_a magistrate_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v in_o the_o kingdom_n and_o place_n assign_v unto_o they_o or_o that_o have_v so_o appoint_v they_o he_o do_v not_o himself_o direct_v uphold_v and_o rule_v they_o by_o his_o omnipotence_n according_a to_o his_o divine_a wisdom_n and_o may_v not_o in_o that_o respect_n be_v true_o call_v the_o lord_n of_o lord_n and_o the_o god_n of_o god_n or_o that_o all_o the_o world_n and_o the_o particular_a kingdom_n and_o civil_a kind_n of_o government_n in_o the_o world_n be_v not_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o he_o be_v the_o governor_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o lord_n of_o lord_n and_o god_n of_o god_n one_o kingdom_n principality_n or_o government_n thereby_o to_o impeach_v the_o mild_a and_o temperate_a government_n which_o he_o have_v establish_v among_o the_o jew_n or_o that_o he_o ever_o commit_v the_o government_n of_o all_o the_o world_n after_o adam_n and_o noah_n time_n to_o any_o one_o man_n to_o be_v the_o sole_a and_o visible_a monarch_n of_o it_o or_o that_o the_o say_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o lord_n and_o god_n of_o god_n and_o so_o govern_v the_o whole_a world_n be_v otherwise_o visible_a upon_o the_o earth_n than_o per_fw-la part_n viz._n by_o the_o particular_a kingdom_n and_o kind_n of_o civil_a government_n or_o perhaps_o by_o some_o representation_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xxxvi_o xcv_o as_o there_o have_v be_v from_o the_o beginning_n one_o universal_a kingdom_n throughout_o all_o the_o world_n whereof_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v ever_o the_o sole_a though_o invisible_a monarch_n as_o we_o have_v show_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n so_o it_o be_v general_o agree_v upon_o among_o all_o christian_n that_o from_o the_o creation_n of_o mankind_n during_o the_o time_n aforesaid_a there_o have_v always_o be_v one_o universal_a or_o catholic_n church_n which_o begin_v in_o adam_n and_o afterward_o as_o his_o posterity_n multiply_v both_o before_o and_o after_o the_o flood_n be_v disperse_v over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n and_o whereof_o the_o son_n of_o god_n likewise_o be_v always_o the_o head_n
placet_fw-la can._n xxxvi_o cii_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o during_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o merit_n of_o christ_n death_n actual_o to_o come_v be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o save_v all_o true_a believer_n or_o that_o there_o be_v then_o no_o catholic_n church_n or_o that_o at_o any_o time_n there_o be_v any_o other_o rock_n but_o jesus_n christ_n the_o bless_a seed_n upon_o who_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v then_o build_v or_o that_o many_o of_o the_o gentile_n be_v not_o always_o for_o aught_o that_o be_v know_v to_o the_o contrary_a true_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n or_o that_o christ_n himself_o be_v not_o the_o sole_a head_n or_o monarch_n all_o that_o while_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n or_o that_o the_o say_a catholic_n church_n after_o the_o member_n of_o it_o be_v disperse_v into_o all_o the_o place_n of_o the_o world_n be_v otherwise_o visible_a than_o per_fw-la part_n or_o that_o noah_n do_v appoint_v any_o man_n to_o be_v the_o visible_a head_n of_o the_o say_a catholic_n church_n or_o that_o the_o highpriest_n among_o the_o jew_n have_v any_o more_o authority_n over_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o god_n than_o king_n david_n have_v over_o the_o universal_a kingdom_n of_o god_n or_o that_o the_o say_a highpriest_n have_v not_o great_o sin_v if_o he_o have_v take_v upon_o he_o or_o usurp_v any_o such_o infinite_a authority_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n the_o say_v xxxvi_o chapter_n with_o the_o constitution_n make_v upon_o they_o have_v pass_v with_o one_o consent_n both_o the_o convocation-house_n and_o so_o be_v approve_v canterbury_n r._n cant._n the_o say_v xxxvi_o chapter_n with_o the_o constitution_n make_v upon_o they_o have_v be_v diligent_o read_v and_o deliberate_o examine_v and_o thereupon_o have_v likewise_o pass_v with_o one_o consent_n in_o the_o convocation-house_n of_o the_o province_n of_o york_n worcester_n jo._n bristol_n praeses_fw-la convocat_n eborac_n lib_fw-la ii_o cap._n i._n in_o pursue_v our_o intend_a course_n through_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o until_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n we_o over-slipped_n and_o pass_v by_o the_o fullness_n of_o that_o time_n wherein_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o maker_n and_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o world_n our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n so_o as_o now_o we_o be_v to_o return_v back_o and_o prosecute_v our_o say_a course_n as_o we_o find_v the_o true_a ground_n thereof_o be_v lay_v down_o confirm_v and_o practise_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n at_o our_o entrance_n into_o which_o course_n we_o confess_v ourselves_o to_o be_v indeed_o great_o astonish_v consider_v the_o strange_a impediment_n and_o mighty_a stumbling-block_n which_o through_o long_a practice_n and_o incredible_a ambition_n be_v cast_v in_o our_o way_n in_o that_o we_o find_v the_o estate_n of_o that_o church_n which_o will_v rule_v over_o all_o to_o be_v degenerate_v in_o our_o day_n as_o far_o in_o effect_n from_o her_o primary_n and_o apostolical_a institution_n and_o rule_n as_o we_o have_v show_v before_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n to_o have_v swerve_v through_o the_o like_a pride_n and_o ambition_n from_o that_o excellent_a condition_n wherein_o she_o be_v first_o establish_v and_o afterward_o preserve_v and_o beautify_v by_o moses_n and_o king_n david_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o most_o worthy_a and_o godly_a successor_n 46._o for_o except_o we_o shall_v condemn_v the_o old_a testament_n as_o many_o ancient_a heretic_n have_v do_v and_o thereupon_o overthrow_v all_o which_o hitherto_o we_o have_v build_v and_o not_o that_o only_a but_o shall_v furthermore_o either_o approve_v of_o their_o gross_a impiety_n who_o read_v the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o if_o they_o be_v falsify_v and_o corrupt_v and_o by_o receive_v and_o reject_v as_o much_o of_o they_o as_o they_o list_v do_v prefer_v before_o they_o as_o not_o contain_v in_o they_o all_o necessary_a truth_n for_o man_n salvation_n certain_a obscure_a and_o apocryphal_a write_n or_o shall_v ourselves_o impious_o imagine_v that_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o now_o we_o have_v it_o be_v but_o a_o rough_a draught_n and_o a_o fit_a project_n compile_v for_o the_o time_n by_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v afterward_o better_o order_v polish_a and_o supply_v with_o certain_a humane_a tradition_n and_o doctrine_n by_o some_o of_o their_o successor_n we_o can_v see_v no_o authentical_a ground_n nor_o sufficient_a warrant_n in_o those_o write_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o true_a rule_n of_o every_o christian_a man_n conscience_n as_o not_o be_v there_o to_o be_v find_v for_o any_o apostolical_a priest_n or_o bishop_n either_o to_o pretend_v that_o all_o the_o particular_a church_n in_o the_o world_n be_v under_o his_o government_n or_o to_o tell_v the_o subject_n of_o any_o christian_a king_n opposite_a in_o some_o point_n unto_o he_o that_o they_o be_v no_o long_o bind_v to_o obey_v he_o their_o say_a king_n but_o until_o they_o shall_v be_v able_a by_o force_n of_o arm_n or_o by_o some_o secret_a practice_n to_o subdue_v he_o or_o to_o challenge_v to_o himself_o a_o absolute_a and_o universal_a authority_n and_o power_n over_o all_o king_n and_o kingdom_n in_o the_o world_n to_o bestow_v they_o in_o some_o case_n under_o pretence_n of_o religion_n when_o he_o shall_v think_v the_o same_o to_o be_v most_o available_a for_o the_o strengthen_n and_o uphold_v of_o such_o his_o pretend_a universal_a power_n and_o dominion_n to_o the_o proof_n whereof_o before_o we_o address_v ourselves_o because_o the_o same_o do_v much_o depend_v upon_o the_o admirable_a humiliation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o take_v our_o nature_n upon_o he_o and_o perform_v the_o work_n of_o our_o salvation_n in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o he_o do_v we_o have_v think_v it_o our_o duty_n lest_o otherwise_o we_o may_v be_v mistake_v either_o through_o weakness_n simplicity_n or_o malice_n first_o brief_o to_o observe_v notwithstanding_o our_o saviour_n say_a humiliation_n the_o most_o wonderful_a dignity_n preeminency_n and_o royalty_n of_o his_o person_n it_o be_v many_o way_n apparent_a that_o the_o mean_a estate_n and_o condition_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n here_o upon_o earth_n be_v one_o especial_a motive_n both_o to_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n why_o in_o their_o carnal_a judgement_n he_o be_v to_o the_o one_o sort_n a_o scandal_n and_o to_o the_o other_o a_o scorn_n as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o man_n out_o of_o his_o wit_n and_o preach_v he_o know_v not_o what_o in_o which_o respect_n partly_o not_o only_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o priest_n of_o all_o sort_n the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o hypocritical_a order_n but_o likewise_o the_o civil_a governor_n as_o well_o roman_n as_o jew_n do_v utter_o despise_v he_o hate_v he_o deride_z him_z beat_v he_o and_o put_v he_o to_o death_n since_o which_o time_n sundry_a sort_n of_o heretic_n have_v stumble_v at_o the_o same_o stone_n labour_v by_o all_o the_o mean_n they_o can_v to_o impeach_v and_o dishonour_v the_o person_n of_o christ_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o mean_a show_n of_o his_o humane_a nature_n notwithstanding_o the_o many_o argument_n which_o they_o may_v have_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n have_v not_o their_o heart_n be_v harden_v of_o his_o divinity_n on_o the_o other_o side_n we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a how_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o his_o adherent_n suppose_v it_o will_v too_o much_o impeach_v their_o credit_n and_o worldly_a reputation_n if_o they_o shall_v be_v too_o much_o press_v to_o deduce_v the_o principal_a strength_n of_o their_o estate_n and_o calling_n from_o the_o say_v mean_a condition_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n whilst_o he_o live_v in_o this_o world_n do_v thereupon_o attribute_v sundry_a virtue_n power_n and_o branch_n of_o authority_n unto_o his_o humane_a nature_n which_o do_v not_o in_o truth_n belong_v proper_o unto_o it_o but_o be_v rather_o appertain_v to_o his_o person_n be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n as_o hope_v thereby_o to_o get_v some_o fair_a pretence_n and_o colour_n for_o the_o uphold_v of_o their_o usurp_a greatness_n and_o pretend_v uncontrollable_a sovereignty_n for_o the_o avoid_n therefore_o of_o these_o extremity_n and_o because_o such_o as_o deny_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n be_v most_o false_o charge_v by_o sundry_a passionate_a and_o inconsiderate_a person_n to_o be_v man_n that_o believe_v no_o one_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n we_o have_v think_v it_o meet_v to_o make_v it_o know_v to_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n how_o detestable_a to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n all_o such_o false_a doctrine_n be_v as_o do_v any_o way_n not_o only_o impeach_v the_o sacred_a person_n of_o our_o saviour_n
but_o for_o evil_a therefore_o he_o do_v not_o simple_o command_v obedience_n to_o ethnic_a prince_n etc._n etc._n 3._o the_o like_a manner_n of_o writing_n st._n paul_n use_v in_o exhort_v servant_n to_o honour_v their_o lord_n etiam_fw-la infideles_fw-la though_o they_o be_v infidel_n for_o the_o reason_n by_o he_o there_o mention_v 4._o by_o those_o monition_n mean_v the_o say_a commandment_n of_o the_o apostle_n concern_v obedience_n of_o subject_n to_o their_o prince_n and_o of_o servant_n to_o their_o master_n just_a dominion_n be_v not_o found_v in_o the_o person_n of_o ethnic_n na_o paulus_n qui_fw-la hec_fw-la dicit_fw-la non_fw-la erat_fw-la summus_fw-la pontifex_fw-la for_o paul_n who_o say_v so_o be_v not_o the_o chief_a bishop_n etc._n etc._n 5._o furthermore_o in_o that_o time_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o church_n can_v not_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la punish_v infidel_n and_o transfer_v their_o kingdom_n etc._n etc._n thus_o far_o this_o audacious_a and_o unlearned_a canonist_n the_o very_a citation_n of_o who_o word_n we_o hold_v sufficient_a to_o refute_v they_o although_o he_o allege_v for_o himself_o to_o support_v they_o very_o grave_a author_n the_o distinction_n forsooth_o the_o gloss_n hostiensis_n &_o praepositus_fw-la add_v that_o some_o other_o canonist_n do_v concur_v with_o he_o only_o we_o will_v oppose_v against_o he_o and_o all_o his_o fellow_n to_o show_v their_o folly_n by_o a_o proof_n of_o this_o nature_n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o pope_n chief_a champion_n the_o only_a jesuit_n without_o comparison_n now_o a_o principal_a cardinal_n who_o maintain_v in_o express_a term_n that_o infidel_n prince_n be_v true_a and_o supreme_a prince_n of_o their_o kingdom_n and_o write_v thus_o against_o the_o say_a assertion_n of_o the_o canonist_n direct_o say_v god_n do_v approve_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o gentile_n in_o both_o the_o testament_n 2._o thou_o be_v king_n of_o king_n and_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n have_v give_v thou_o thy_o kingdom_n and_o empire_n etc._n etc._n restore_v those_o thing_n unto_o caesar_n that_o be_v caesar_n 22._o note_v that_o he_o say_v not_o give_v but_o restore_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v caesar_n that_o be_v those_o thing_n which_o in_o right_n be_v owe_v unto_o he_o 13._o and_o give_v unto_o all_o man_n that_o which_o be_v due_a unto_o they_o tribute_n to_o who_o you_o owe_v tribute_n and_o custom_n to_o who_o you_o owe_v custom_n et_fw-la jubet_fw-la ibidem_fw-la etiam_fw-la propter_fw-la conscientiam_fw-la obedire_fw-la principibus_fw-la ethnicis_fw-la at_o certè_fw-la non_fw-la tenemur_fw-la in_o conscientiâ_fw-la obedire_fw-la illi_fw-la qui_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la verus_fw-la princeps_fw-la that_o be_v and_o we_o be_v command_v in_o the_o same_o place_n even_o for_o conscience_n to_o obey_v prince_n that_o be_v ethnic_n but_o assure_o we_o be_v not_o bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o obey_v he_o who_o be_v no_o true_a lawful_a or_o right_a prince_n hitherto_o the_o cardinal_n we_o will_v not_o have_v cite_v this_o man_n testimony_n thus_o at_o large_a be_v not_o all_o that_o he_o have_v say_v therein_o thorough_o support_v by_o all_o the_o learned_a man_n as_o we_o suppose_v of_o his_o society_n and_o sufficient_a to_o refel_v the_o vanity_n of_o the_o canonist_n and_o their_o fellow_n in_o that_o folly_n for_o if_o we_o shall_v insist_v herein_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o man_n all_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v full_o concur_v with_o we_o that_o through_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o the_o scripture_n obedience_n be_v and_o be_v as_o well_o prescribe_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o ethnic_a prince_n as_o unto_o the_o king_n of_o judah_n and_o so_o likewise_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o well_o to_o infidel_n prince_n as_o christian_a the_o precept_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o that_o behalf_n be_v general_a and_o so_o to_o be_v apply_v as_o well_o to_o the_o one_o sort_n as_o to_o the_o other_o in_o that_o they_o hold_v their_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n equal_o as_o be_v aforesaid_a and_o therefore_o aught_o to_o be_v equal_o obey_v by_o their_o subject_n with_o that_o general_a caution_n which_o be_v ever_o understand_v viz._n in_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o command_v they_o and_o be_v not_o repugnant_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v in_o this_o sort_n only_o remember_v by_o we_o we_o will_v not_o much_o insist_v upon_o they_o but_o give_v that_o honour_n which_o be_v due_a especial_o in_o a_o matter_n so_o apparent_a unto_o the_o sole_a authority_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n who_o write_v by_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n those_o thing_n which_o christ_n himself_o before_o have_v teach_v they_o do_v give_v unto_o all_o christian_n and_o subject_n to_o what_o manner_n of_o king_n soever_o these_o precept_n follow_v let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n 13._o for_o there_o be_v no_o power_n but_o of_o god_n for_o the_o power_n that_o be_v be_v ordain_v of_o god_n whosoever_o therefore_o resist_v the_o power_n resist_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o they_o that_o resist_v shall_v receive_v to_o themselves_o judgement_n for_o prince_n be_v not_o to_o be_v fear_v for_o good_a work_n but_o for_o evil_a will_v thou_o then_o be_v without_o fear_n do_v well_o so_o shall_v thou_o have_v praise_n of_o the_o same_o for_o he_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n for_o thy_o wealth_n but_o if_o thou_o do_v evil_a fear_n for_o he_o bear_v not_o the_o sword_n for_o nought_o for_o he_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n to_o take_v vengeance_n of_o he_o that_o do_v evil_a wherefore_o you_o must_v be_v subject_a not_o because_o of_o wrath_n only_o but_o also_o for_o conscience_n sake_n for_o this_o cause_n you_o pay_v also_o tribute_n for_o they_o be_v god_n minister_n apply_v themselves_o for_o the_o same_o thing_n in_o which_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o say_v that_o prince_n have_v their_o power_n from_o god_n and_o that_o he_o be_v god_n minister_n there_o be_v no_o repugnancy_n to_o that_o which_o we_o have_v abovesaid_a concern_v the_o great_a honour_n and_o dignity_n of_o the_o humanity_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n to_o prove_v that_o king_n do_v hold_v their_o kingdom_n under_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n the_o lamb_n of_o god_n and_o heir_n of_o all_o the_o world_n for_o we_o be_v very_o careful_a to_o have_v it_o still_o remember_v that_o all_o the_o say_a power_n and_o dignity_n which_o he_o have_v as_o he_o be_v man_n do_v proceed_v from_o his_o divinity_n and_o likewise_o that_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o real_a union_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n in_o our_o saviour_n christ_n that_o which_o do_v proper_o belong_v to_o the_o one_o nature_n may_v very_o true_o be_v affirm_v of_o the_o other_o so_o as_o it_o may_v in_o that_o respect_n be_v very_o well_o say_v and_o true_o that_o all_o king_n and_o prince_n receive_v their_o authority_n from_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n and_o likewise_o that_o they_o receive_v their_o authority_n from_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v god_n and_o that_o they_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o christ_n be_v man_n and_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n without_o any_o limitation_n but_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o say_v word_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v very_o thorough_o refute_v the_o vanity_n mention_v of_o the_o canonist_n and_o their_o new_a companion_n in_o that_o by_o the_o say_a word_n it_o appear_v very_o manifest_o that_o king_n do_v not_o otherwise_o hold_v their_o kingdom_n of_o the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n than_o they_o do_v before_o of_o his_o divine_a nature_n they_o have_v their_o authority_n say_v the_o apostle_n from_o god_n and_o they_o be_v god_n minister_n and_o there_o be_v nothing_o write_v either_o by_o st._n paul_n or_o by_o any_o other_o of_o the_o apostle_n which_o swerve_v in_o any_o point_n from_o this_o doctrine_n where_o they_o write_v of_o the_o obedience_n due_a unto_o all_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n who_o testimony_n in_o that_o behalf_n we_o be_v as_o we_o promise_v a_o little_a further_o to_o pursue_v i_o exhort_v etc._n say_v st._n paul_n that_o first_o of_o all_o supplication_n prayer_n intercession_n and_o give_v of_o thanks_o be_v make_v for_o all_o man_n for_o king_n and_o for_o all_o that_o be_v in_o authority_n that_o we_o may_v lead_v a_o quiet_a and_o a_o peaceable_a life_n in_o all_o godliness_n and_o honesty_n and_o again_o 1._o put_v they_o that_o be_v both_o old_a and_o young_a and_o all_o sort_n of_o person_n that_o be_v purge_v to_o be_v a_o peculiar_a people_n unto_o christ_n in_o remembrance_n that_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o principality_n and_o power_n and_o that_o they_o be_v obedient_a and_o ready_a to_o every_o good_a work_n also_o st._n peter_n say_v to_o the_o same_o effect_n etc._n submit_v
it_o and_o as_o all_o the_o particular_a kingdom_n in_o the_o world_n be_v call_v but_o one_o kingdom_n as_o he_o be_v the_o only_a king_n and_o monarch_n of_o it_o or_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v not_o appoint_v under_o he_o several_a ecclesiastical_a governor_n to_o rule_v and_o direct_v the_o say_v particular_a church_n as_o he_o have_v appoint_v several_a king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v their_o several_a kingdom_n or_o that_o by_o his_o death_n he_o do_v not_o abolish_v the_o ceremonial_a law_n and_o the_o levitical_a priesthood_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o be_v typical_a and_o have_v the_o execution_n of_o the_o say_v ceremonial_a law_n annex_v unto_o it_o or_o that_o he_o do_v any_o more_o abrogate_v by_o his_o death_n passion_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o church-government_n than_o either_o he_o do_v the_o other_o two_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o say_a priesthood_n or_o ministry_n or_o the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n or_o that_o he_o do_v more_o appoint_v any_o one_o chief_a bishop_n to_o rule_v all_o the_o particular_a church_n which_o shall_v be_v plant_v throughout_o all_o kingdom_n than_o he_o do_v appoint_v any_o one_o king_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v all_o the_o particular_a kingdom_n in_o the_o world_n or_o that_o it_o be_v more_o reasonable_a or_o necessary_a as_o hereafter_o it_o shall_v be_v further_o show_v to_o have_v one_o bishop_n to_o govern_v all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n than_o it_o be_v to_o have_v one_o king_n to_o govern_v all_o the_o kingdom_n in_o the_o world_n or_o that_o it_o be_v more_o necessary_a or_o convenient_a to_o have_v every_o parish_n with_o their_o presbytery_n absolute_a church_n independent_a upon_o any_o but_o christ_n himself_o than_o that_o every_o such_o parish_n shall_v be_v a_o absolute_a temporal_a kingdom_n independent_a of_o any_o earthly_a king_n or_o sovereign_a magistrate_n or_o that_o the_o government_n of_o every_o national_a church_n under_o christian_a king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n by_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n be_v not_o more_o suitable_a and_o correspondent_a to_o the_o government_n of_o the_o national_a church_n of_o the_o jew_n under_o their_o sovereign_a prince_n and_o king_n than_o be_v either_o the_o government_n of_o one_o over_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n or_o the_o settle_n of_o the_o form_n of_o that_o national_a church-government_n in_o every_o particular_a church_n he_o do_v great_o err_v cap._n vii_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o chapter_n follow_v that_o the_o form_n of_o church-government_n which_o be_v ordain_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n do_v consist_v upon_o divers_a degree_n of_o minister_n one_o above_o another_o apostle_n in_o preeminence_n and_o authority_n superior_a to_o the_o evangelist_n and_o the_o evangelist_n superior_a to_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n and_o that_o the_o apostle_n know_v themselves_o to_o be_v mortal_a do_v in_o their_o own_o day_n by_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o the_o number_n of_o christian_n grow_v establish_v the_o say_a form_n of_o government_n in_o other_o person_n appoint_v several_a minister_n in_o sundry_a city_n and_o over_o they_o bishop_n as_o also_o over_o such_o bishop_n certain_a worthy_a person_n such_o as_o titus_n be_v who_o be_v afterward_o term_v arch-bishop_n to_o who_o they_o do_v commit_v so_o much_o of_o their_o apostolical_a authority_n as_o they_o hold_v then_o necessary_a and_o be_v to_o be_v continue_v for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n we_o have_v in_o our_o former_a book_n the_o scripture_n at_o large_a contain_v the_o history_n and_o doctrine_n both_o of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n after_o the_o manner_n that_o be_v then_o prescribe_v from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o creation_n until_o the_o day_n of_o the_o prophet_n malachy_n that_o be_v for_o above_o 3500._o year_n whereupon_o we_o do_v ground_n the_o particular_a point_n by_o we_o therein_o handle_v concern_v the_o government_n as_o well_o ecclesiastical_a as_o temporal_a and_o for_o the_o supply_n of_o the_o other_o year_n follow_v till_o the_o incarnation_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n we_o observe_v some_o thing_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n out_o of_o the_o apocryphal_a book_n second_o to_o the_o scripture_n and_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o other_o writer_n of_o those_o time_n but_o now_o forasmuch_o as_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v but_o in_o effect_n a_o more_o ample_a declaration_n the_o old_a show_v withal_o how_o the_o same_o be_v most_o thorough_o fulfil_v by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n without_o the_o impeachment_n of_o any_o kind_n of_o government_n by_o himself_o ordain_v as_o before_o we_o have_v express_v and_o because_o the_o book_n of_o the_o evangelist_n and_o apostle_n do_v only_o contain_v the_o act_n and_o doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n with_o the_o form_n and_o use_v both_o of_o the_o temporal_a and_o ecclesiastical_a government_n during_o the_o time_n whilst_o they_o live_v here_o upon_o the_o earth_n st._n john_n who_o live_v the_o long_a of_o they_o all_o die_v about_o sixty_o six_o year_n after_o christ_n passion_n although_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v judge_v the_o say_a book_n and_o write_n sufficient_a for_o the_o church_n and_o all_o that_o profess_v christianity_n to_o teach_v and_o direct_v they_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o shall_v appertain_v either_o to_o their_o temporal_a or_o ecclesiastical_a government_n or_o shall_v be_v necessary_a unto_o their_o salvation_n yet_o for_o the_o say_a reason_n we_o be_v induce_v for_o the_o uphold_v of_o the_o temporal_a and_o ecclesiastical_a government_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o insist_v so_o much_o as_o we_o have_v do_v upon_o the_o precedent_n and_o platform_n of_o both_o those_o kind_n of_o government_n establish_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n albeit_o we_o want_v no_o sufficient_a testimony_n in_o the_o new_a to_o ratify_v and_o confirm_v as_o well_o the_o one_o as_o the_o other_o first_o therefore_o we_o do_v very_o think_v that_o if_o our_o saviour_n christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n have_v mean_v to_o have_v erect_v in_o the_o church_n among_o the_o gentile_n any_o other_o form_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n than_o god_n himself_o have_v set_v up_o among_o the_o jew_n they_o will_v have_v do_v it_o assure_o in_o very_o solemn_a manner_n that_o all_o the_o world_n may_v have_v take_v public_a notice_n of_o it_o consider_v with_o what_o majesty_n and_o authority_n the_o say_a form_n be_v erect_v at_o god_n commandment_n by_o his_o servant_n moses_n but_o in_o that_o they_o well_o know_v how_o the_o form_n of_o the_o old_a ecclesiastical_a government_n in_o substance_n be_v still_o to_o continue_v and_o to_o be_v in_o time_n establish_v in_o every_o national_a kingdom_n and_o sovereign_a principality_n among_o christian_n as_o soon_o as_o they_o shall_v become_v for_o number_v sufficient_a body_n and_o ample_a church_n to_o receive_v the_o same_o as_o before_o the_o like_a opportunity_n it_o be_v not_o establish_v among_o the_o israelite_n they_o do_v in_o the_o mean_a while_n and_o as_o the_o time_n do_v serve_v they_o attempt_v the_o erect_n of_o it_o in_o such_o sort_n and_o by_o such_o fit_a and_o convenient_a degree_n as_o by_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n they_o hold_v it_o most_o expedient_a without_o intermission_n till_o such_o time_n as_o the_o work_n be_v in_o effect_n accomplish_v it_o have_v be_v before_o touch_v how_o our_o saviour_n christ_n here_o upon_o earth_n do_v not_o only_o choose_v to_o himself_o for_o the_o business_n he_o have_v in_o hand_n twelve_o apostle_n who_o be_v then_o design_v in_o time_n to_o come_v to_o be_v the_o patriarch_n and_o chief_a father_n of_o all_o christian_n with_o some_o resemblance_n as_o it_o have_v be_v ever_o hold_v of_o the_o twelve_o son_n of_o jacob_n who_o have_v be_v in_o their_o day_n the_o patriarch_n and_o chief_a father_n of_o all_o the_o israelite_n but_o likewise_o he_o take_v unto_o he_o over_z and_o beside_o his_o say_a apostle_n 70_o or_o as_o some_o read_v 72_o disciple_n to_o be_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n his_o assistant_n in_o imitation_n of_o moses_n when_o he_o choose_v 70._o elder_n to_o be_v helper_n unto_o he_o for_o the_o better_a government_n of_o the_o people_n commit_v to_o his_o charge_n none_o of_o these_o either_o apostle_n or_o disciple_n have_v then_o any_o other_o duty_n commit_v to_o they_o but_o only_o of_o preach_v and_o baptise_v for_o the_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a regiment_n they_o may_v not_o then_o intermeddle_v with_o because_o it_o do_v appertain_v to_o the_o priest_n and_o court_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o afterward_o that_o want_n and_o some_o other_o defect_n in_o they_o be_v thorough_o supply_v when_o our_o saviour_n christ_n upon_o his_o resurrection_n and_o a_o little_a
gregory_n the_o first_o denounce_v a_o curse_n against_o that_o bishop_n qui_fw-la jubet_fw-la alicui_fw-la agro_n more_fw-mi fiscali_fw-la titulum_fw-la imprimi_fw-la who_o do_v challenge_v to_o hold_v any_o possession_n as_o a_o absolute_a temporal_a prince_n in_o right_a of_o his_o church_n the_o cardinal_n do_v answer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v marvel_v that_o gregory_n will_v not_o have_v bishop_n nor_o the_o prefect_n of_o the_o patrimony_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o use_v more_o fiscali_fw-la in_o recover_v the_o possession_n of_o the_o church_n for_o say_v he_o nondum_fw-la habuerat_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la politicum_fw-la principatum_fw-la sed_fw-la possidebat_fw-la bona_fw-la temporalia_fw-la ad_fw-la eum_fw-la modum_fw-la quo_fw-la privati_fw-la homines_fw-la possident_fw-la itaque_fw-la aequum_fw-la erat_fw-la ut_fw-la agros_fw-la quos_fw-la suos_fw-la esse_fw-la censebat_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la si_fw-la forte_fw-fr ab_fw-la aliis_fw-la occuparentur_fw-la in_fw-la judicio_fw-la legitimo_fw-la eos_fw-la repeteret_fw-la non_fw-la autem_fw-la more_n fiscali_fw-la propriâ_fw-la sibi_fw-la autoritate_fw-la vendicaret_fw-la that_o be_v for_o as_o yet_o mean_v when_o gregorylived_a which_o be_v 600._o year_n after_o christ_n the_o church_n have_v no_o political_a principality_n but_o do_v possess_v her_o temporal_a good_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n whereby_o other_o private_a citizen_n possess_v they_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v agreeable_a to_o equity_n that_o if_o perhaps_o the_o possession_n which_o the_o church_n suppose_v to_o be_v she_o be_v occupy_v by_o other_o man_n she_o be_v to_o require_v they_o judicio_fw-la legitimo_fw-la in_o a_o temporal_a court_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o who_o the_o same_o be_v hold_v and_o may_v not_o challenge_v they_o to_o herself_o by_o her_o own_o proper_a authority_n more_o fiscali_fw-la as_o sovereign_a prince_n do_v when_o their_o right_n be_v detain_v from_o they_o last_o 11._o the_o cardinal_n be_v so_o far_o drive_v by_o a_o worthy_a man_n and_o some_o other_o of_o our_o side_n who_o hold_v it_o unlawful_a for_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o any_o other_o bishop_n to_o be_v absolute_a worldly_a prince_n whosoever_o do_v bestow_v that_o sovereignty_n upon_o they_o the_o same_o be_v direct_o against_o christ_n word_n vos_fw-fr autem_fw-la non_fw-la sic_fw-la and_o for_o many_o other_o reason_n as_o he_o fly_v to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o maccabee_n when_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n as_o touch_v the_o high-priesthood_n be_v utter_o neglect_v and_o nothing_o in_o effect_n leave_v in_o the_o church_n but_o pride_n presumption_n blood_n and_o confusion_n as_o we_o have_v declare_v in_o our_o first_o book_n cap._n 32._o and_o will_v glad_o thereby_o uphold_v the_o pope_n regality_n probatur_fw-la these_o be_v his_o word_n although_o perhaps_o it_o be_v absolute_o better_a that_o bishop_n shall_v deal_v with_o spiritual_a matter_n and_o king_n with_o temporal_a yet_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o malice_n of_o time_n experience_n do_v cry_v that_o some_o temporal_a principality_n be_v not_o only_o profitable_a but_o also_o of_o necessity_n and_o by_o the_o singular_a providence_n of_o god_n give_v to_o the_o bishop_n ofrome_n and_o to_o other_o bishop_n for_o if_o in_o germany_n the_o bishop_n have_v not_o be_v prince_n none_o have_v continue_v to_o this_o day_n in_o their_o seat_n as_o therefore_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o high-priest_n be_v for_o a_o long_a time_n without_o temporal_a authority_n or_o empire_n yet_o in_o the_o latter_a time_n religion_n can_v not_o have_v continue_v and_o be_v defend_v except_o the_o highpriest_n have_v be_v king_n that_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o maccabee_n so_o we_o see_v it_o have_v fall_v out_o to_o the_o church_n that_o she_o which_o in_o her_o first_o time_n have_v no_o need_n of_o temporal_a principality_n to_o defend_v her_o majesty_n do_v now_o seem_v necessary_o to_o have_v need_n of_o it_o as_o though_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v now_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v in_o her_o pride_n and_o presumption_n determine_v still_o to_o tyrannize_v over_o all_o king_n priest_n kingdom_n and_o church_n contrary_a to_o the_o rule_n and_o prescription_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o of_o his_o bless_a apostle_n the_o pope_n must_v needs_o be_v temporal_a king_n thus_o far_o we_o have_v follow_v the_o cardinal_n who_o be_v bold_a to_o affirm_v that_o neither_o st._n peter_n nor_o the_o pope_n his_o pretend_a successor_n nor_o any_o other_o of_o the_o apostle_n nor_o of_o their_o successor_n archbishop_n or_o bishop_n nor_o any_o other_o minister_n nor_o all_o the_o minister_n in_o the_o world_n if_o they_o be_v together_o do_v succeed_v christ_n as_o he_o be_v after_o his_o resurrection_n or_o ascension_n a_o man_n immortal_a and_o glorious_a but_o only_o as_o he_o be_v a_o mortal_a man_n and_o live_v here_o in_o that_o estate_n upon_o the_o earth_n without_o the_o enjoy_n of_o any_o temporal_a kingdom_n or_o regal_a possession_n content_v himself_o to_o be_v only_o a_o spiritual_a king_n and_o to_o have_v in_o this_o world_n a_o spiritual_a kingdom_n that_o be_v his_o church_n so_o term_v because_o he_o rule_v only_o in_o those_o man_n heart_n which_o be_v true_a member_n of_o it_o the_o gospel_n also_o be_v name_v evangelium_fw-la regni_fw-la because_o it_o contain_v the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o messiah_n and_o spiritual_a king_n and_o how_o he_o do_v establish_v his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n in_o and_o among_o men._n of_o which_o spiritual_a kingdom_n some_o little_o further_a consideration_n and_o how_o our_o saviour_n christ_n obtain_v it_o and_o then_o do_v and_o still_o do_v govern_v it_o will_v make_v the_o folly_n of_o those_o man_n more_o apparent_a which_o can_v apprehend_v the_o excellency_n of_o it_o except_o it_o have_v join_v with_o it_o all_o worldly_a principality_n and_o authority_n none_o be_v ignorant_a that_o have_v any_o sense_n of_o christianity_n how_o all_o man_n by_o nature_n be_v the_o child_n of_o wrath_n and_o how_o before_o they_o embrace_v christ_n by_o faith_n 2._o they_o walk_v according_a to_o the_o course_n of_o this_o world_n and_o after_o the_o prince_n that_o rule_v in_o the_o air_n even_o the_o spirit_n that_o still_o work_v in_o the_o child_n of_o disobedience_n which_o wicked_a spirit_n be_v term_v the_o spirit_n of_o darkness_n 12._o all_o his_o subject_n and_o servant_n 11._o and_o whatsoever_o they_o take_v in_o hand_z be_v call_v the_o child_n and_o work_n of_o darkness_n from_o who_o service_n have_v not_o our_o saviour_n christ_n deliver_v we_o and_o by_o subdue_a and_o vanquish_a this_o wicked_a prince_n take_v actual_o the_o possession_n of_o our_o heart_n where_o the_o devil_n before_o reign_v we_o have_v be_v still_o in_o the_o state_n of_o wrath_n and_o damnation_n 8._o whereas_o now_o through_o grace_n and_o by_o faith_n christ_n dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n we_o be_v no_o more_o darkness_n 22._o but_o light_n in_o the_o lord_n nor_o be_v to_o hold_v any_o long_a fellowship_n with_o the_o unfruitful_a work_n of_o darkness_n or_o of_o the_o flesh_n but_o be_v bind_v be_v replenish_v with_o god_n holy_a spirit_n to_o bring_v forth_o the_o fruit_n and_o operation_n of_o the_o same_o to_o this_o vanquishment_n of_o satan_n by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n these_o scripture_n follow_v have_v relation_n etc._n if_o i_o by_o the_o finger_n of_o god_n do_v cast_v out_o devil_n doubtless_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v come_v unto_o you_o when_o a_o strong_a man_n arm_v keep_v his_o palace_n the_o thing_n which_o he_o possess_v be_v in_o peace_n but_o when_o a_o strong_a than_o he_o come_v upon_o he_o and_o overcome_v he_o he_o take_v from_o he_o all_o his_o armour_n wherein_o he_o trust_v and_o divide_v the_o spoil_n 31._o again_o now_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o this_o world_n now_o shall_v the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n be_v cast_v out_o and_o again_o etc._n we_o cease_v not_o to_o pray_v for_o you_o etc._n etc._n that_o you_o may_v walk_v worthy_a of_o the_o lord_n etc._n etc._n give_v thanks_o to_o god_n the_o father_n etc._n etc._n who_o have_v deliver_v we_o from_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n and_o have_v translate_v we_o into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o dear_a son_n in_o who_o we_o have_v redemption_n through_o his_o blood_n again_o 15._o christ_n put_v out_o the_o hand-writing_n of_o ordinance_n that_o be_v against_o we_o etc._n etc._n he_o take_v it_o out_o of_o the_o way_n and_o fasten_v it_o upon_o the_o cross_n and_o have_v spoil_v the_o principality_n and_o power_n and_o have_v make_v a_o show_n of_o they_o open_o and_o have_v triumph_v over_o they_o in_o himself_o 8._o and_o last_o he_o that_o commit_v sin_n be_v of_o the_o devil_n for_o the_o devil_n sin_v from_o the_o beginning_n for_o this_o purpose_n appear_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v loose_v the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n now_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v by_o fulfil_n the_o law_n for_o
church_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 300._o year_n bring_v the_o ecclesiastical_a commonwealth_n as_o here_o it_o be_v term_v unto_o her_o spiritual_a end_n as_o direct_o and_o full_o as_o either_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o any_o other_o bishop_n have_v at_o any_o time_n do_v since_o and_o yet_o they_o take_v no_o power_n and_o authority_n upon_o they_o nor_o do_v challenge_v the_o same_o of_o dispose_v of_o temporal_a kingdom_n or_o depose_v of_o prince_n beside_o if_o such_o a_o indirect_a temporal_a power_n be_v so_o necessary_a in_o these_o day_n for_o the_o uphold_v the_o ecclesiastical_a commonwealth_n as_o that_o without_o the_o same_o she_o can_v attain_v the_o spiritual_a end_n or_o be_v a_o perfect_a ecclesiastical_a commonwealth_n when_o there_o be_v so_o many_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n then_o be_v the_o same_o much_o more_o necessary_a for_o the_o attainment_n of_o the_o same_o end_n in_o the_o say_a time_n of_o christ_n of_o his_o apostle_n and_o of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o age_n follow_v for_o 300._o year_n when_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n be_v pagan_n and_o infidel_n and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n persecutor_n of_o the_o truth_n but_o we_o hope_v we_o may_v be_v bold_a without_o offence_n to_o say_v that_o there_o appear_v then_o no_o such_o necessity_n of_o this_o pretend_a temporal_a power_n and_o authority_n in_o any_o ecclesiastical_a person_n over_o king_n and_o kingdom_n for_o the_o dispose_n of_o they_o and_o that_o nevertheless_o the_o ecclesiastical_a commonwealth_n in_o those_o time_n do_v attain_v her_o spiritual_a end_n and_o be_v as_o perfect_v a_o ecclesiastical_a commonwealth_n as_o it_o be_v now_o under_o the_o pope_n government_n notwithstanding_o all_o his_o temporal_a sovereignty_n wherein_o he_o so_o ruffle_v again_o we_o be_v persuade_v that_o it_o can_v be_v show_v out_o of_o any_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n or_o by_o any_o general_a council_n for_o the_o space_n of_o above_o 500_o year_n after_o christ_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v ever_o imagine_v to_o have_v such_o temporal_a authority_n to_o depose_v king_n as_o now_o be_v maintain_v much_o less_o be_v it_o ever_o dream_v of_o during_o that_o time_n that_o such_o authority_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o attain_v the_o spiritual_a end_n whereunto_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n ought_v to_o aim_n or_o that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a commonwealth_n ordain_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n can_v not_o be_v perfect_a without_o it_o it_o be_v a_o miserable_a shift_n if_o any_o shall_v either_o say_v that_o during_o all_o the_o time_n abovementioned_a first_o the_o apostle_n and_o then_o the_o holy_a bishop_n martyr_n and_o father_n after_o they_o be_v ignorant_a of_o this_o new_a temporal_a power_n or_o at_o least_o do_v not_o so_o thorough_o consider_v of_o the_o necessity_n of_o it_o as_o they_o may_v have_v do_v or_o that_o whilst_o they_o live_v there_o can_v indeed_o no_o such_o matter_n be_v collect_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n for_o that_o in_o those_o day_n the_o scripture_n have_v not_o receive_v such_o a_o sense_n and_o meaning_n as_o may_v support_v the_o same_o but_o that_o afterward_o when_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v think_v it_o necessary_a to_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o such_o temporal_a authority_n over_o both_o king_n and_o kingdom_n the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v alter_v but_o be_v this_o shift_n never_o so_o wretched_a or_o miserable_a yet_o for_o aught_o we_o perceive_v they_o be_v in_o effect_n and_o still_o will_v be_v both_o in_o this_o cause_n and_o many_o other_o drive_v unto_o it_o the_o scripture_n be_v in_o their_o hand_n a_o very_a rule_n of_o lead_n and_o nose_n of_o wax_n as_o in_o another_o more_o fit_a place_n we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o show_v moreover_o if_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v this_o great_a temporal_a authority_n over_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n to_o preserve_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n here_o upon_o earth_n that_o she_o may_v attain_v her_o spiritual_a end_n assure_o he_o have_v make_v little_a use_n of_o it_o to_o that_o purpose_n for_o it_o be_v well_o know_v and_o can_v be_v deny_v that_o for_o the_o first_o 300._o year_n of_o christ_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v flourish_v far_o and_o near_o in_o greece_n thracia_n sclavonia_n hungary_n asia_n minor_fw-la syria_n assyria_n egypt_n and_o throughout_o the_o most_o part_n of_o africa_n where_o there_o be_v many_o very_a worthy_a apostolical_a and_o notable_a church_n in_o the_o most_o of_o which_o place_n there_o be_v scarce_o in_o these_o day_n any_o footstep_n or_o visible_a monument_n of_o they_o and_o although_o afterward_o during_o the_o space_n of_o above_o 700._o year_n much_o mischief_n be_v wrought_v in_o these_o part_n of_o the_o world_n better_o know_v unto_o we_o than_o the_o rest_n by_o sundry_a sort_n of_o scythian_n and_o northern_a people_n yet_o after_o the_o day_n of_o gregory_n the_o seven_o when_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v most_o vaunt_v of_o this_o their_o sovereign_a power_n over_o king_n and_o prince_n the_o turk_n gain_v and_o encroach_v more_o upon_o christendom_n still_o retain_v that_o which_o they_o then_o have_v so_o get_v than_o at_o any_o time_n before_o whereby_o it_o be_v to_o we_o very_o evident_a that_o neither_o christ_n nor_o his_o apostle_n ever_o ordain_v that_o the_o mean_n of_o building_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o conservation_n of_o it_o shall_v consist_v in_o the_o temporal_a power_n or_o authority_n of_o any_o of_o their_o successor_n to_o deprive_v emperor_n or_o king_n from_o their_o imperial_a or_o regal_a estate_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n may_v be_v ashamed_a that_o have_v have_v so_o great_a authority_n in_o their_o own_o hand_n extort_a from_o the_o emperor_n and_o other_o king_n per_fw-la fas_fw-la &_o nefas_fw-la since_o gregory_n the_o seventh_n time_n they_o have_v make_v no_o better_a use_n of_o it_o but_o suffer_v so_o many_o famous_a country_n and_o kingdom_n to_o be_v utter_o overrun_v and_o waste_v by_o pagan_n and_o infidel_n consider_v that_o they_o pretend_v themselves_o to_o have_v so_o great_a a_o authority_n for_o no_o other_o purpose_n but_o only_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n that_o she_o may_v not_o be_v prevent_v of_o her_o spiritual_a end_n but_o what_o shall_v we_o speak_v of_o the_o shame_n of_o rome_n who_o forehead_n have_v be_v so_o long_o since_o harden_v or_o ever_o imagine_v that_o almighty_a god_n either_o do_v or_o will_v bless_v her_o usurpation_n and_o insolence_n against_o emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n for_o any_o good_a to_o his_o church_n other_o than_o must_v accrue_v unto_o she_o through_o her_o persecution_n and_o affliction_n for_o it_o be_v no_o great_a labour_n to_o make_v it_o most_o apparent_a by_o very_a many_o history_n if_o we_o will_v insist_v upon_o it_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o strive_v first_o to_o get_v and_o then_o to_o uphold_v after_o their_o scramble_a manner_n this_o their_o wicked_a and_o usurp_a authority_n of_o trouble_v and_o vex_v christian_n kingdom_n and_o state_n with_o their_o manifold_a oppression_n and_o quarrel_n have_v be_v some_o special_a mean_n whereupon_o the_o saracen_n turk_n and_o pagan_n have_v wrought_v and_o by_o degree_n bring_v so_o great_a a_o part_n of_o christendom_n under_o their_o slavery_n as_o now_o they_o be_v possess_v of_o for_o it_o be_v but_o a_o idle_a and_o a_o vain_a pretence_n that_o the_o preservation_n of_o as_o much_o of_o christendom_n as_o be_v yet_o free_a from_o the_o turk_n and_o paganism_n be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o his_o authority_n that_o so_o the_o catholic_n church_n may_v attain_v her_o spiritual_a end_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o plant_n of_o church_n and_o conservation_n of_o they_o it_o be_v most_o manifest_a to_o as_o many_o as_o have_v any_o wit_n experience_n and_o sound_a judgement_n that_o as_o the_o very_a situation_n of_o the_o say_a country_n which_o now_o pagan_n enjoy_v make_v they_o very_o subject_a unto_o the_o incursion_n and_o invasion_n of_o saracen_n and_o turk_n god_n himself_o for_o his_o own_o glory_n have_v his_o finger_n and_o just_a operation_n therein_o so_o through_o his_o most_o merciful_a goodness_n and_o care_n of_o his_o church_n he_o bless_v the_o situation_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o christendom_n be_v now_o free_a in_o that_o respect_n from_o those_o kind_n of_o violence_n and_o endow_v the_o heart_n of_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n with_o such_o courage_n and_o constancy_n in_o defence_n of_o christianity_n and_o of_o their_o kingdom_n as_o notwithstanding_o that_o the_o pope_n do_v great_o vex_v they_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n they_o do_v mighty_o repel_v the_o force_n of_o their_o enemy_n and_o most_o religious_o uphold_v and_o maintain_v the_o
power_n unto_o other_o and_o write_v thus_o whatsoever_o emperor_n have_v they_o have_v it_o from_o christ_n and_o therefore_o say_v he_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n may_v either_o take_v from_o king_n and_o emperor_n the_o execution_n of_o their_o authority_n as_o be_v himself_o the_o high_a king_n and_o emperor_n or_o he_o may_v not_o if_o he_o may_v then_o be_v he_o great_a than_o christ_n if_o he_o may_v not_o ergo_fw-la he_o have_v not_o in_o truth_n any_o regal_a power_n and_o he_o conclude_v this_o point_n with_o this_o observation_n as_o the_o sun_n do_v not_o make_v or_o institute_v the_o moon_n but_o god_n himself_o so_o likewise_o the_o empire_n and_o the_o pontifical_a dignity_n be_v not_o one_o neither_o do_v the_o one_o absolute_o depend_v upon_o the_o other_o last_o 4._o to_o prove_v his_o three_o proposition_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n direct_o he_o reason_v in_o this_o sort_n christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n whilst_o he_o live_v here_o upon_o earth_n neither_o take_v nor_o will_v take_v any_o temporal_a dominion_n but_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v christ_n vicar_n and_o do_v represent_v christ_n unto_o we_o qualis_fw-la erat_fw-la dùm_fw-la hîc_fw-la inter_fw-la homines_fw-la viveret_fw-la as_o he_o be_v whilst_o he_o live_v here_o among_o man_n therefore_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o temporal_a dominion_n now_o before_o he_o come_v to_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o the_o first_o proposition_n of_o this_o argument_n and_o that_o he_o may_v make_v the_o ground_n thereof_o more_o plain_a he_o say_v 1._o that_o christ_n be_v always_o as_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o all_o creature_n in_o the_o same_o sort_n that_o the_o father_n be_v 2._o that_o his_o kingdom_n be_v eternal_a and_o divine_a and_o neither_o take_v away_o the_o kingdom_n of_o man_n nor_o can_v agree_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 3._o that_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n be_v the_o spiritual_a king_n of_o all_o man_n and_o have_v most_o ample_a spiritual_a power_n over_o all_o man_n as_o well_o faithful_a as_o infidel_n 4._o that_o this_o spiritual_a power_n of_o christ_n shall_v after_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v sensible_a and_o manifest_a 5._o that_o the_o glory_n of_o this_o kingdom_n do_v begin_v in_o our_o head_n christ_n when_o he_o arise_v from_o the_o dead_a upon_o which_o ground_n he_o make_v these_o inference_n 1._o that_o the_o say_v spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n the_o glory_n whereof_o begin_v after_o his_o resurrection_n be_v not_o a_o temporal_a kingdom_n such_o as_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o king_n 2._o that_o the_o say_v spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n over_o all_o man_n can_v be_v communicate_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n because_o it_o presupposeth_a the_o resurrection_n 3._o that_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n if_o he_o have_v list_n and_o have_v think_v it_o expedient_a for_o he_o can_v have_v take_v upon_o he_o a_o kingly_a authority_n but_o will_v not_o and_o therefore_o neither_o do_v receive_v any_o such_o authority_n neither_o have_v not_o only_o the_o execution_n of_o any_o dominion_n or_o kingdom_n but_o not_o the_o authority_n or_o power_n of_o any_o kingdom_n temporal_a and_o so_o he_o come_v to_o the_o proof_n of_o his_o say_a proposition_n say_v that_o if_o christ_n have_v any_o such_o temporal_a kingdom_n he_o have_v it_o either_o by_o hereditary_a succession_n or_o by_o election_n or_o by_o the_o law_n of_o war_n or_o by_o the_o especial_a gift_n of_o god_n but_o he_o have_v it_o by_o none_o of_o these_o four_o way_n ergo_fw-la he_o have_v no_o such_o dominion_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o all_o which_o particular_n he_o take_v good_a pain_n and_o then_o come_v to_o the_o explication_n of_o these_o word_n in_o his_o second_o proposition_n of_o the_o first_o argument_n concern_v this_o point_n viz._n that_o the_o pope_n do_v represent_v christ_n unto_o we_o as_o he_o be_v when_o he_o live_v here_o among_o man_n and_o say_v 1._o we_o can_v attribute_v unto_o the_o pope_n those_o office_n which_o christ_n have_v either_o as_o he_o be_v god_n or_o as_o he_o be_v a_o immortal_a and_o glorify_a man_n but_o those_o which_o he_o have_v as_o he_o be_v a_o mortal_a man._n 2._o neither_o have_v the_o pope_n all_o the_o power_n which_o christ_n have_v as_o he_o be_v a_o mortal_a man._n for_o he_o because_o he_o be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n have_v a_o certain_a power_n which_o man_n call_v the_o power_n of_o excellency_n whereby_o he_o rule_v both_o faithful_a and_o infidel_n but_o the_o faithful_a only_o be_v commit_v to_o the_o pope_n 3._o christ_n have_v authority_n to_o institute_v sacrament_n and_o to_o work_v miracle_n by_o his_o own_o authority_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o 4._o christ_n have_v power_n to_o absolve_v man_n from_o their_o sin_n without_o the_o sacrament_n which_o the_o pope_n can_v do_v with_o bellarmin_n that_o he_o may_v not_o bear_v this_o great_a burden_n upon_o his_o own_o shoulder_n and_o undergo_v alone_o the_o envy_n thereof_o ensue_a a_o army_n of_o writer_n both_o old_a and_o new_a do_v concur_v he_o have_v himself_o set_v down_o the_o name_n of_o some_o and_o for_o his_o better_a supportation_n we_o have_v think_v it_o fit_a to_o assist_v he_o with_o two_o more_o viz._n the_o archbishop_n of_o compsa_n one_o ambrose_n catharinus_n and_o boëtius_n epon_n a_o count_n palatin_n who_o book_n of_o heroical_a and_o ecclesiastical_a question_n print_v at_o douai_n 1588._o a_o place_n whole_o jesuit_v be_v great_o approve_v by_o tho._n stapleton_n our_o countryman_n and_o balthasar_n seulin_n the_o dean_n of_o amate_v a_o licentiate_a of_o the_o pope_n law_n and_o the_o ordinary_a visitor_n or_o allower_n of_o such_o book_n as_o be_v think_v meet_v to_o be_v publish_v non_fw-la desunt_fw-la plerique_fw-la etc._n etc._n 13._o there_o be_v many_o say_v catharinus_n who_o be_v not_o content_a with_o that_o that_o be_v sufficient_a ne_o dicam_fw-la nimiùm_fw-la that_o i_o may_v not_o say_v it_o be_v too_o much_o who_o either_o to_o flatter_v or_o of_o too_o gross_a simplicity_n do_v affirm_v that_o the_o temporal_a dominion_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n do_v belong_v of_o right_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o be_v christ_n chief_a vicar_n in_o earth_n in_o that_o christ_n say_v all_o thing_n be_v give_v to_o i_o of_o my_o father_n verùm_fw-la ridicula_fw-la haec_fw-la profectò_fw-la quae_fw-la neque_fw-la ipsimet_fw-la pontifices_fw-la auderent_fw-la asserere_fw-la but_o assure_o these_o be_v ridiculous_a joy_n the_o pope_n themselves_o dare_v not_o for_o shame_v so_o affirm_v quòd_fw-la autèm_fw-la papa_n sit_fw-la vicarius_fw-la christi_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v call_v christ_n vicar_n what_o force_n have_v it_o to_o persuade_v we_o that_o all_o the_o kingdom_n in_o the_o world_n be_v commit_v to_o be_v govern_v by_o he_o in_o temporal_a cause_n nay_o say_v he_o it_o rather_o induce_v we_o to_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v not_o commit_v unto_o he_o quoniam_fw-la christus_fw-la abjecit_fw-la ea_fw-la &_o ut_fw-la homo_fw-la erat_fw-la in_fw-la mundo_fw-la non_fw-la habuit_fw-la because_o he_o cast_v they_o from_o he_o and_o as_o he_o be_v man_n have_v they_o not_o himself_o and_o the_o say_v boëtius_n epon_n 5._o have_v set_v down_o the_o reason_n why_o some_o have_v maintain_v the_o pope_n say_a universal_a dominion_n in_o temporal_a cause_n and_o give_v a_o touch_n of_o the_o jew_n error_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n oversight_n in_o that_o behalf_n he_o say_v thus_o neque_fw-la nos_fw-la forsitan_fw-la judaeis_n multò_fw-la vel_fw-la meliores_fw-la vel_fw-la minùs_fw-la inepti_fw-la sumus_fw-la dum_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o we_o perhaps_o be_v not_o either_o much_o better_o or_o less_o foolish_a than_o the_o jew_n whilst_o we_o do_v ridiculous_o mingle_v the_o temporal_a and_o earthly_a kingdom_n or_o empire_n with_o the_o kingdom_n ecclesiastical_a or_o spiritual_a by_o wrest_v to_o that_o purpose_n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n which_o do_v nothing_o less_o than_o make_v either_o christ_n or_o peter_n or_o the_o pope_n the_o temporal_a monarch_n either_o of_o the_o whole_a world_n or_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n digni_fw-la profectò_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o be_v certain_o worthy_a of_o this_o answer_n of_o christ_n nescitis_fw-la quid_fw-la petatis_fw-la quidve_fw-la disputetis_fw-la you_o know_v not_o what_o you_o ask_v nor_o what_o you_o dispute_v of_o and_o thus_o it_o appear_v what_o opposition_n there_o have_v be_v ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o gregory_n the_o seven_o against_o the_o insolency_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o such_o eminent_a and_o sovereign_a authority_n temporal_a over_o all_o king_n and_o emperor_n 23._o and_o how_o in_o these_o late_a time_n 2._o through_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n man_n of_o any_o good_a part_n or_o
own_o sister_n miriam_n for_o use_v some_o undutiful_a speech_n against_o he_o 32._o be_v strike_v by_o god_n with_o a_o exceed_a great_a leprosy_n and_o so_o odious_a be_v the_o murmur_a of_o korab_n dathan_n and_o abiram_n and_o their_o confederate_n as_o the_o lord_n cause_v the_o earth_n to_o open_v and_o to_o swallow_v some_o of_o they_o quick_a and_o the_o fire_n to_o consume_v the_o rest_n joshua_n succeed_v moses_n the_o people_n profess_v their_o subjection_n and_o obedience_n unto_o he_o say_v 18._o all_o that_o thou_o have_v command_v we_o we_o will_v do_v and_o whithersoever_o thou_o send_v we_o we_o will_v go_v as_o we_o obey_v moses_n in_o all_o thing_n so_o will_v we_o obey_v thou_o whosoever_o shall_v rebel_v against_o thy_o commandment_n and_o will_v not_o obey_v thy_o word_n in_o all_o that_o thou_o do_v command_v he_o let_v he_o be_v put_v to_o death_n during_o the_o reign_n of_o all_o the_o judge_n though_o the_o people_n be_v note_v for_o many_o great_a enormity_n yet_o we_o do_v not_o find_v that_o they_o rebel_v or_o show_v any_o great_a disobedience_n against_o they_o who_o god_n have_v set_v over_o they_o to_o rule_v they_o except_o the_o particular_a murmur_a and_o opposition_n of_o the_o ephramite_n against_o gideon_n and_o jephtha_n at_o their_o first_o entrance_n upon_o conceit_n they_o have_v be_v contemn_v which_o opposition_n god_n punish_v with_o a_o great_a overthrow_n of_o they_o when_o the_o people_n have_v king_n according_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o other_o nation_n to_o order_n and_o govern_v they_o their_o subjection_n be_v rather_o increase_v than_o diminish_v according_a to_o samuel_n description_n of_o the_o king_n claim_n or_o manner_n of_o rule_v 10._o which_o shall_v reign_v over_o they_o to_o command_v not_o only_o over_o the_o person_n of_o his_o subject_n but_o also_o over_o their_o good_n which_o manner_n of_o rule_v or_o deal_n by_o any_o king_n without_o a_o just_a cause_n as_o it_o be_v tyranny_n so_o to_o deny_v it_o when_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o king_n and_o state_n do_v require_v it_o according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v a_o great_a neglect_n of_o preserve_v the_o public_a good_a and_o a_o high_a degree_n of_o disobedience_n 12._o beside_o it_o be_v general_o agree_v upon_o that_o obedience_n to_o king_n and_o civil_a magistrate_n be_v prescribe_v to_o all_o subject_n in_o the_o five_o commandment_n twenty-three_o where_o we_o be_v enjoin_v to_o honour_v our_o parent_n whereby_o it_o follow_v that_o subjection_n of_o inferior_n unto_o their_o king_n and_o governor_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o very_a law_n of_o nature_n and_o consequent_o that_o the_o sentence_n of_o death_n award_v by_o god_n himself_o against_o such_o as_o show_v themselves_o disobedient_a and_o incorrigible_a to_o their_o parent_n or_o curse_v they_o or_o strike_v they_o be_v likewise_o due_a unto_o those_o who_o commit_v any_o such_o offence_n against_o their_o king_n and_o ruler_n be_v the_o head_n and_o father_n of_o their_o commonwealth_n and_o kingdom_n which_o be_v not_o only_o apparent_a by_o way_n of_o consequence_n but_o likewise_o by_o example_n practice_n and_o precept_n as_o where_o shimei_n be_v judge_v to_o die_v for_o curse_v of_o david_n 9_o the_o lord_n be_v anoint_v 7._o where_o david_n himself_o 28._o appoint_v by_o god_n to_o succeed_v king_n saul_n 20._o will_v not_o be_v induce_v by_o any_o persuasion_n to_o lay_v violent_a hand_n upon_o his_o master_n the_o king_n and_o where_o it_o be_v say_v principi_fw-la populi_fw-la tui_fw-la non_fw-la maledices_fw-la and_o again_o ne_o maledicas_fw-la regi_fw-la in_o cord_n tuo_fw-la to_o which_o purpose_n more_o may_v be_v allege_v can._n xvi_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a in_o the_o old_a testament_n either_o for_o child_n or_o nephew_n to_o have_v be_v disobedient_a to_o their_o father_n be_v their_o chief_a governor_n from_o the_o creation_n till_o moses_n time_n or_o afterward_o for_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n either_o under_o moses_n joshua_n the_o judge_n or_o their_o king_n to_o have_v be_v disobedient_a to_o they_o in_o their_o lawful_a commandment_n or_o to_o have_v murmur_v or_o rebel_v against_o they_o or_o that_o it_o be_v in_o those_o time_n more_o lawful_a unto_o subject_n for_o any_o cause_n whatsoever_o either_o to_o curse_v their_o prince_n king_n or_o civil_a governor_n or_o to_o bear_v arm_n against_o they_o or_o to_o depose_v they_o from_o their_o kingdom_n or_o principality_n or_o to_o lay_v violent_a hand_n upon_o their_o person_n than_o it_o be_v in_o the_o say_a time_n lawful_a upon_o any_o occasion_n xxiv_o for_o child_n either_o to_o have_v curse_v their_o parent_n or_o to_o have_v rebel_v against_o they_o when_o they_o do_v reprove_v or_o correct_v they_o or_o to_o have_v withdraw_v themselves_o from_o their_o subjection_n say_v unto_o they_o they_o be_v private_a man_n we_o will_v be_v no_o more_o your_o child_n or_o you_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o our_o father_n or_o bear_v civil_a authority_n over_o they_o we_o will_v depose_v you_o from_o your_o government_n over_o we_o and_o will_v be_v no_o long_o rule_v by_o you_o or_o to_o have_v offer_v any_o violence_n unto_o they_o or_o to_o have_v beat_v they_o and_o much_o less_o to_o have_v murder_v they_o he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xvii_o when_o god_n appoint_v prince_n judge_n and_o king_n to_o reign_v over_o his_o people_n the_o manner_n usual_o be_v that_o they_o have_v notice_n of_o it_o thereby_o to_o conform_v themselves_o to_o obedience_n 30._o moses_n and_o aaron_n acquaint_v the_o israelite_n with_o god_n pleasure_n for_o their_o deliverance_n out_o of_o egypt_n by_o their_o service_n agreeable_o to_o his_o promise_n former_o make_v to_o abraham_n and_o they_o cheerful_o and_o with_o great_a thankfulness_n submit_v themselves_o to_o be_v rule_v by_o they_o 18._o god_n have_v appoint_v joshua_n to_o succeed_v moses_n 9_o the_o same_o be_v signify_v by_o moses_n to_o the_o israelite_n and_o they_o willing_o protest_v their_o obedience_n unto_o he_o likewise_o no_o soon_o do_v the_o lord_n assign_v judge_n to_o defend_v and_o govern_v they_o but_o present_o they_o follow_v and_o obey_v they_o upon_o the_o people_n request_n 24._o samuel_n have_v anoint_v saul_n for_o their_o king_n when_o the_o same_o be_v make_v apparent_a to_o they_o 13._o either_o by_o cast_v of_o lot_n or_o by_o answer_n from_o the_o lord_n they_o shout_v when_o they_o see_v he_o twenty-five_o and_o say_v god_n save_o the_o king_n king_n david_n be_v anoint_v by_o samuel_n at_o god_n appointment_n to_o succeed_v king_n saul_n and_o after_o saul_n death_n come_v thereupon_o by_o god_n direction_n to_o hebron_n 4._o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n present_o anoint_v he_o again_o for_o their_o king_n etc._n and_o yield_v themselves_o to_o be_v govern_v by_o he_o seven_o year_n after_o all_o which_o time_n king_n david_n have_v war_n with_o ishbosheth_n saul_n son_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o tribe_n come_v unto_o david_n and_o acknowledge_v that_o god_n have_v ordain_v he_o to_o be_v their_o governor_n king_n david_n grow_v old_a 34._o and_o have_v appoint_v by_o god_n direction_n his_o son_n solomon_n to_o be_v anoint_v king_n in_o his_o own_o life_n time_n 5._o when_o the_o people_n know_v that_o zadok_v the_o priest_n have_v so_o anoint_v he_o they_o forthwith_o upon_o the_o blow_n of_o the_o trumpet_n 39_o say_v all_o with_o one_o voice_n god_n save_o king_n solomon_n afterward_o also_o the_o like_a course_n be_v hold_v upon_o the_o death_n of_o every_o king_n to_o make_v his_o successor_n know_v to_o the_o people_n sometime_o they_o be_v so_o addict_v unto_o new_a king_n as_o they_o expect_v no_o further_a circumstance_n but_o submit_v themselves_o to_o their_o government_n and_o sometime_o it_o be_v hold_v fit_a for_o the_o young_a prince_n to_o imitate_v king_n david_n example_n 7._o by_o kind_a usage_n and_o love_a word_n to_o knit_v more_o firm_o their_o subject_n heart_n unto_o they_o placet_fw-la eye_n can._n xvii_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v xxvi_o either_o that_o the_o calling_n of_o moses_n of_o aaron_n of_o joshua_n of_o the_o judge_n of_o saul_n of_o david_n of_o solomon_n or_o of_o any_o other_o of_o the_o king_n of_o judah_n elect_v and_o name_v by_o god_n himself_o or_o come_v to_o their_o kingdom_n by_o succession_n according_a as_o jacob_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n have_v foretell_v do_v receive_v any_o such_o virtue_n or_o strength_n from_o the_o people_n their_o say_a notice_n presence_n and_o applause_n as_o that_o without_o the_o same_o the_o say_a calling_n of_o god_n either_o by_o name_n or_o by_o succession_n have_v be_v insufficient_a or_o that_o if_o the_o people_n have_v withstand_v any_o of_o they_o so_o call_v by_o god_n as_o be_v aforesaid_a they_o
have_v not_o thereby_o sin_v and_o unjust_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o god_n or_o that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o judah_n by_o god_n ordinance_n go_v by_o succession_n when_o one_o king_n be_v dead_a his_o heir_n be_v not_o in_o right_a their_o king_n however_o by_o some_o athaliah_n he_o may_v be_v hinder_v from_o enjoy_v it_o or_o that_o the_o people_n be_v not_o bind_v without_o any_o further_a circumstance_n upon_o sufficient_a notice_n of_o their_o former_a king_n death_n to_o have_v obey_v his_o heir_n apparent_a as_o their_o lawful_a king_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xviii_o although_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v reckon_v among_o the_o rest_n of_o such_o as_o be_v subject_n to_o their_o prince_n judge_n and_o king_n yet_o we_o have_v think_v it_o fit_a to_o make_v the_o same_o more_o apparent_a by_o some_o particular_n aaron_n the_o chief_a priest_n xxvii_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o levite_n after_o that_o aaron_n be_v possess_v of_o the_o high_a priesthood_n be_v at_o moses_n direction_n all_o the_o time_n that_o he_o live_v and_o when_o he_o the_o say_v aaron_n have_v in_o some_o sort_n forget_v his_o duty_n to_o moses_n in_o join_v with_o his_o sister_n undutiful_o against_o he_o he_o find_v his_o offence_n therein_o and_o do_v humble_o submit_v himself_o in_o this_o sort_n to_o he_o 11._o alas_o my_o lord_n i_o beseech_v thou_o lay_v not_o this_o sin_n upon_o we_o which_o we_o have_v foolish_o commit_v it_o be_v likewise_o manifest_a in_o the_o book_n of_o joshua_n that_o eleazar_n who_o succeed_v aaron_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n under_o he_o dispose_v of_o themselves_o and_o of_o their_o service_n as_o joshua_n their_o prince_n and_o governor_n do_v command_v they_o and_o how_o obedient_a and_o humble_a both_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o levite_n and_o the_o prophet_n themselves_o be_v to_o their_o king_n the_o example_n of_o zadok_n jehojadah_fw-mi azariah_n helchiah_n nathan_n and_o divers_a other_o do_v declare_v they_o submit_v themselves_o to_o their_o direction_n and_o when_o they_o come_v into_o their_o presence_n make_v obeisance_n before_o they_o upon_o their_o face_n to_o the_o ground_n likewise_o have_v office_n distribute_v and_o assign_v several_o unto_o they_o by_o sundry_a king_n they_o execute_v the_o same_o in_o the_o service_n of_o the_o temple_n according_o and_o as_o while_o they_o do_v their_o duty_n they_o be_v cherish_v so_o upon_o any_o notorious_a offence_n commit_v by_o they_o they_o be_v censure_v and_o punish_v 35._o solomon_n depose_v abiathar_n from_o the_o high_a priesthood_n and_o place_v zadok_n in_o his_o room_n and_o josiah_n likewise_o thrust_v all_o the_o priest_n from_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o jerusalem_n 5._o who_o have_v burn_v incense_n in_o the_o high_a place_n xxviii_o placet_fw-la eye_n can._n xviii_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o the_o priest_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v not_o as_o right_o and_o proper_o subject_n to_o the_o civil_a governor_n as_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o people_n or_o that_o when_o they_o any_o way_n offend_v they_o may_v not_o be_v punish_v as_o lawful_o by_o they_o as_o any_o other_o he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xix_o as_o we_o have_v say_v of_o the_o people_n that_o when_o the_o king_n of_o judah_n be_v to_o succeed_v one_o another_o their_o duty_n be_v to_o come_v together_o with_o joy_n and_o gladness_n to_o receive_v they_o for_o their_o king_n as_o send_v unto_o they_o as_o from_o god_n himself_o and_o according_o to_o submit_v themselves_o unto_o their_o authority_n and_o government_n so_o at_o such_o time_n the_o priest_n for_o the_o most_o part_n beside_o their_o general_a duty_n as_o subject_n have_v some_o further_a service_n to_o be_v then_o by_o they_o perform_v the_o part_n of_o which_o service_n be_v all_o of_o they_o manifest_v in_o the_o advancement_n of_o king_n solomon_n to_o the_o royal_a throne_n of_o his_o father_n king_n david_n etc._n where_o the_o priest_n by_o king_n david_n direction_n do_v give_v thanks_o to_o god_n and_o pray_v for_o king_n solomon_n they_o offer_v the_o people_n sacrifice_n of_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n to_o god_n for_o their_o new_a king_n and_o zadok_v the_o high_a priest_n do_v himself_o anoint_v he_o howbeit_o this_o their_o service_n thus_o by_o they_o perform_v do_v neither_o give_v to_o king_n solomon_n any_o right_a or_o title_n to_o succeed_v his_o father_n nor_o to_o themselves_o any_o privilege_n or_o exemption_n from_o their_o subjection_n and_o obedience_n unto_o he_o 7._o abiathar_n the_o high_a priest_n do_v anoint_v adoniah_n to_o have_v succeed_v king_n david_n eye_n and_o no_o duty_n of_o likelihood_n be_v omit_v which_o be_v to_o be_v do_v in_o such_o a_o solemn_a action_n xxix_o but_o thereby_o adoniah_n receive_v nothing_o but_o a_o badge_n of_o treason_n against_o the_o king_n his_o father_n which_o he_o carry_v with_o he_o to_o his_o grave_n and_o zadok_v the_o high_a priest_n notwithstanding_o that_o he_o have_v anoint_v king_n solomon_n be_v afterward_o as_o much_o subject_n and_o as_o dutiful_a unto_o he_o as_o he_o have_v be_v before_o unto_o his_o father_n king_n david_n nay_o the_o great_a the_o service_n be_v of_o any_o person_n to_o their_o sovereign_n the_o great_a be_v and_o so_o ought_v to_o be_v their_o subjection_n and_o obedience_n unto_o they_o can._n xix_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o adoniah_n be_v ever_o lawful_o king_n of_o the_o israelite_n because_o abiathar_n the_o high_a priest_n have_v anoint_v he_o or_o that_o king_n solomon_n receive_v from_o zadok_n or_o from_o the_o holy_a oil_n which_o he_o pour_v upon_o his_o head_n any_o interest_n to_o his_o father_n kingly_a seat_n which_o he_o have_v not_o before_o by_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o his_o father_n appointment_n or_o that_o abiathar_n may_v not_o just_o have_v be_v condemn_v for_o a_o traitor_n in_o that_o he_o anoint_v adoniah_n as_o be_v aforesaid_a the_o right_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v then_o in_o king_n david_n and_o in_o he_o by_o god_n appointment_n to_o be_v dispose_v of_o and_o bestow_v upon_o his_o young_a son_n solomon_n or_o that_o it_o have_v not_o be_v a_o traitorous_a offence_n in_o zadok_n thirty_o if_o be_v command_v thereupon_o by_o king_n david_n to_o anoint_v king_n solomon_n he_o shall_v have_v refuse_v so_o to_o have_v do_v or_o that_o either_o zadok_n or_o any_o other_o priest_n who_o afterward_o according_a to_o their_o duty_n anoint_v the_o king_n of_o judah_n be_v thereby_o more_o exempt_v from_o their_o subjection_n and_o obedience_n unto_o they_o than_o be_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o people_n by_o their_o joy_n and_o applause_n when_o their_o king_n be_v new_o advance_v to_o their_o kingdom_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xx._n as_o it_o be_v apparent_a in_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o israelite_n general_o as_o well_o the_o priest_n as_o the_o people_n be_v equal_o bind_v as_o subject_n personal_o to_o honour_n reverence_n and_o obey_v their_o king_n so_o be_v it_o there_o also_o as_o manifest_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o their_o sovereign_n over_o they_o do_v not_o only_o extend_v to_o civil_a cause_n but_o in_o like_a manner_n to_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a for_o as_o it_o be_v then_o the_o duty_n of_o parent_n so_o by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n be_v it_o of_o good_a king_n and_o civil_a magistrate_n to_o bring_v up_o their_o child_n and_o subject_n in_o the_o true_a service_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n as_o have_v a_o care_n commit_v unto_o they_o not_o only_o of_o their_o body_n but_o likewise_o of_o their_o soul_n in_o which_o respect_n the_o chief_a charge_n that_o all_o subject_n and_o inferior_a person_n of_o what_o condition_n soever_o shall_v diligent_o observe_v the_o say_a law_n of_o nature_n be_v the_o very_a same_o in_o substance_n that_o god_n write_v with_o his_o own_o finger_n give_v unto_o moses_n and_o style_v by_o the_o name_n of_o his_o ten_o commandment_n be_v principal_o impose_v upon_o king_n and_o civil_a ruler_n they_o be_v to_o provide_v that_o their_o subject_n have_v no_o other_o god_n but_o he_o who_o make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n xxix_o that_o they_o make_v to_o themselves_o no_o grave_v image_n nor_o bow_v down_o to_o they_o nor_o worship_v they_o that_o they_o do_v careful_o meet_v at_o certain_a time_n to_o serve_v honour_n and_o magnify_v the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v negligent_a in_o the_o observe_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o commandment_n and_o albeit_o through_o the_o sin_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n both_o king_n and_o subject_n be_v become_v unable_a so_o to_o perform_v these_o their_o duty_n of_o piety_n
may_v then_o lawful_o command_v and_o do_v what_o they_o list_v in_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o priesthood_n from_o the_o regal_a principality_n the_o same_o have_v be_v former_o in_o one_o person_n they_o be_v then_o so_o by_o god_n distinguish_v as_o in_o some_o thing_n appertain_v to_o the_o office_n of_o king_n no_o priest_n as_o he_o be_v a_o priest_n have_v any_o authority_n to_o intermeddle_v as_o in_o some_o other_o thing_n appertain_v to_o the_o office_n of_o priest_n no_o king_n as_o he_o be_v a_o king_n may_v lawful_o be_v a_o actor_n both_o of_o they_o have_v their_o bound_n and_o limit_n appoint_v unto_o they_o by_o god_n which_o without_o sin_n they_o may_v not_o exceed_v and_o therefore_o as_o we_o great_o blame_v the_o highpriest_n 11._o vriah_n for_o obey_v the_o wicked_a command_n of_o king_n ahaz_n in_o building_n by_o his_o direction_n a_o altar_n in_o the_o temple_n according_a to_o the_o form_n of_o one_o that_o be_v in_o damascus_n 17._o so_o do_v we_o great_o commend_v the_o godly_a zeal_n of_o azariah_n the_o highpriest_n and_o of_o eighty_o other_o priest_n that_o be_v with_o he_o in_o withstand_v as_o far_o as_o lawful_o they_o may_v vzziah_n king_n of_o judah_n when_o in_o the_o pride_n of_o his_o heart_n he_o go_v into_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o will_v have_v burn_v incense_n upon_o the_o altar_n of_o incense_n which_o none_o may_v lawful_o do_v but_o priest_n but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o they_o do_v not_o withstand_v the_o king_n by_o force_n or_o army_n but_o tell_v he_o that_o it_o do_v not_o appertain_v unto_o he_o xxxvij_o but_o to_o the_o priest_n to_o burn_v incense_n unto_o the_o lord_n and_o therefore_o urge_v he_o to_o go_v forth_o of_o the_o sanctuary_n howbeit_o the_o king_n be_v angry_a with_o they_o for_o the_o same_o persist_v as_o it_o appear_z in_o his_o former_a purpose_n and_o have_v incense_n in_o his_o hand_n will_v have_v burn_v it_o upon_o the_o altar_n if_o god_n himself_o have_v not_o strike_v he_o in_o the_o forehead_n with_o a_o leprosy_n wherewith_o be_v terrify_v as_o also_o with_o a_o great_a earthquake_n then_o happen_v as_o some_o learned_a man_n have_v write_v from_o amos_n 1._o 1._o he_o be_v constrain_v not_o only_o to_o desist_v from_o that_o rashness_n and_o to_o depart_v hasty_o out_o of_o the_o sanctuary_n but_o likewise_o as_o a_o leper_n to_o dwell_v in_o a_o house_n apart_o according_a to_o the_o law_n and_o jotham_n his_o son_n 21._o as_o viceroy_n rule_v his_o father_n house_n and_o judge_v the_o people_n of_o the_o land_n vzziah_n himself_o during_o his_o life_n remain_v king_n can._n xxii_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o uriah_n the_o high_a priest_n be_v bind_v to_o have_v build_v the_o say_a altar_n because_o king_n ahaz_n do_v command_v he_o or_o that_o azariah_n and_o the_o other_o priest_n do_v amiss_o in_o reprove_v king_n uzziah_n so_o plain_o or_o that_o they_o lawful_o may_v have_v use_v any_o violence_n or_o force_n against_o the_o king_n person_n either_o in_o hinder_v he_o from_o burn_v of_o incense_n or_o in_o thrust_v he_o out_o of_o the_o temple_n or_o in_o compel_v he_o to_o dwell_v apart_o in_o a_o house_n as_o he_o do_v though_o he_o be_v a_o leper_n if_o he_o have_v not_o of_o himself_o yield_v to_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o law_n in_o that_o behalf_n xxxviij_o or_o that_o he_o be_v deprive_v of_o his_o kingdom_n either_o by_o the_o say_a stroke_n of_o god_n or_o by_o his_o dwell_n in_o a_o house_n apart_o or_o that_o any_o thing_n which_o the_o priest_n than_o do_v may_v have_v be_v a_o lawful_a warrant_n to_o any_o priest_n afterward_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n either_o to_o have_v depose_v by_o sentence_n any_o of_o their_o king_n from_o their_o kingdom_n for_o the_o like_a offence_n or_o to_o have_v use_v arm_n or_o repress_v such_o their_o unlawful_a attempt_n by_o forcible_a way_n though_o they_o have_v imagine_v the_o same_o may_v have_v tend_v to_o the_o preservation_n of_o religion_n or_o that_o either_o before_o that_o time_n or_o afterward_o any_o priest_n do_v resist_v by_o force_n of_o arm_n or_o depose_v any_o of_o the_o king_n either_o of_o israel_n or_o of_o judah_n from_o their_o kingdom_n though_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n all_o of_o they_o and_o fourteen_o of_o the_o king_n of_o judah_n be_v open_a and_o plain_a idolater_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xxiii_o we_o have_v show_v before_o that_o king_n solomon_n do_v lawful_o depose_v abiathar_n from_o the_o priesthood_n and_o place_v zadok_n in_o his_o room_n but_o that_o any_o priest_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o likewise_o we_o have_v before_o declare_v do_v ever_o depose_v from_o their_o crown_n any_o of_o their_o king_n how_o wicked_a soever_o or_o have_v any_o authority_n so_o to_o do_v it_o can_v never_o be_v prove_v howbeit_o one_o example_n of_o jehoiada_n 1._o the_o highpriest_n be_v fit_a to_o be_v consider_v after_o the_o death_n of_o ahaziah_n king_n of_o judah_n his_o mother_n athaliah_n find_v his_o child_n to_o be_v very_o young_a kill_v they_o all_o but_o the_o young_a and_o reign_v by_o usurpation_n six_o year_n over_o the_o land_n the_o say_v young_a child_n who_o name_n be_v joash_n be_v secret_o convey_v away_o by_o his_o aunt_n jehoshabeth_n his_o father_n sister_n and_o the_o wife_n of_o jehoiada_n the_o highpriest_n who_o keep_v he_o so_o secret_o in_o the_o temple_n thirty-nine_o as_o that_o athaliah_n the_o usurper_n can_v never_o hear_v of_o he_o now_o after_o the_o say_v six_o year_n that_o joash_n the_o true_a and_o natural_a heir_n apparent_a to_o the_o crown_n have_v be_v so_o bring_v up_o he_o the_o say_a jehoiada_n be_v the_o king_n uncle_n and_o the_o chief_a head_n or_o prince_n of_o his_o tribe_n send_v through_o judah_n for_o the_o levite_n and_o chief_a father_n both_o of_o judah_n and_o of_o benjamin_n to_o come_v unto_o he_o to_o jerusalem_n who_o according_o repair_v thither_o and_o be_v make_v acquaint_v by_o he_o with_o the_o preservation_n of_o their_o prince_n as_o be_v aforesaid_a and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n will_n that_o he_o shall_v reign_v over_o they_o they_o altogether_o by_o a_o covenant_n acknowledge_v their_o allegiance_n unto_o he_o as_o unto_o their_o lawful_a king_n and_o so_o dispose_v of_o thing_n as_o present_o after_o he_o be_v crown_v and_o anoint_a which_o dutiful_a office_n of_o subject_n be_v perform_v they_o apprehend_v the_o usurper_n athaliah_n and_o slay_v she_o as_o before_o it_o be_v by_o the_o say_a state_n resolve_v in_o all_o the_o process_n of_o which_o action_n nothing_o be_v do_v either_o by_o jehoiada_n the_o highpriest_n or_o by_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o people_n of_o judah_n and_o benjamin_n which_o god_n himself_o do_v not_o require_v at_o their_o hand_n joash_n their_o late_a king_n son_n be_v then_o their_o only_a natural_a lord_n and_o sovereign_n although_o athaliah_n keep_v he_o for_o six_o year_n from_o the_o possession_n of_o his_o kingdom_n can._n xxiii_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o athaliah_n do_v well_o in_o murder_v her_o son_n child_n or_o that_o jehoiada_n and_o his_o wife_n do_v amiss_o in_o preserve_v the_o life_n of_o their_o king_n joash_n or_o that_o athaliah_n be_v not_o a_o tyrannical_a usurper_n the_o right_a heir_n of_o that_o kingdom_n be_v alive_a or_o that_o it_o be_v neither_o lawful_a for_o jehoiada_n xl_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o prince_n levite_n and_o people_n to_o have_v yield_v their_o subjection_n unto_o their_o lawful_a king_n nor_o have_v so_o do_v and_o their_o king_n be_v in_o possession_n of_o his_o crown_n to_o have_v join_v together_o for_o the_o overthrow_v of_o athaliah_n the_o usurper_n or_o that_o jehoiada_n the_o highpriest_n be_v not_o bind_v as_o he_o be_v a_o priest_n both_o to_o inform_v the_o prince_n and_o people_n of_o the_o lord_n promise_n that_o joash_n shall_v reign_v over_o they_o and_o likewise_o to_o anoint_v he_o or_o that_o this_o fact_n either_o of_o the_o prince_n priest_n or_o people_n be_v to_o be_v hold_v for_o a_o lawful_a warrant_n for_o any_o afterward_o either_o prince_n priest_n or_o people_n to_o have_v depose_v any_o of_o the_o king_n of_o judah_n who_o by_o right_a of_o succession_n come_v to_o their_o crown_n or_o to_o have_v kill_v they_o for_o any_o respect_n whatsoever_o and_o to_o have_v set_v another_o in_o their_o place_n according_a to_o their_o own_o choice_n or_o that_o either_o this_o example_n of_o jehoiada_n or_o any_o thing_n else_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n do_v give_v then_o unto_o the_o highpriest_n any_o authority_n to_o dispute_v determine_v or_o judge_n whether_o the_o child_n of_o the_o king_n of_o judah_n shall_v
either_o be_v keep_v from_o the_o crown_n because_o their_o father_n be_v idolater_n or_o be_v in_o possession_n of_o it_o shall_v be_v depose_v from_o it_o in_o that_o respect_n or_o in_o any_o other_o respect_n whatsoever_o he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xxiv_o almighty_a god_n foresee_v what_o defect_n there_o will_v be_v sometime_o in_o king_n and_o civil_a magistrate_n and_o sometime_o not_o only_o in_o the_o inferior_a priest_n but_o likewise_o in_o the_o high-priest_n themselves_o do_v still_o as_o occasion_n require_v and_o for_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o church_n raise_v up_o and_o send_v unto_o they_o his_o prophet_n man_n endue_v by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n with_o extraordinary_a authority_n knowledge_n zeal_n and_o courage_n who_o neither_o fear_v king_n nor_o priest_n but_o tell_v they_o plain_o of_o their_o fault_n denounce_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n against_o they_o for_o their_o sin_n xli_o and_o execute_v without_o respect_n of_o person_n such_o other_o part_n of_o their_o duty_n as_o god_n himself_o immediate_o give_v they_o in_o charge_n notwithstanding_o the_o priest_n stand_v much_o upon_o their_o authority_n and_o brag_v that_o the_o law_n shall_v not_o perish_v from_o they_o 18._o flatter_v themselves_o and_o the_o people_n with_o lie_a word_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o people_n speech_n teach_v most_o likely_a by_o they_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n 4._o the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n this_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n yet_o the_o prophet_n tell_v they_o plain_o that_o they_o err_v that_o they_o be_v covetous_a receiver_n of_o gift_n and_o false_a dealer_n that_o they_o have_v pollute_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n that_o the_o law_n shall_v perish_v from_o they_o that_o god_n himself_o have_v find_v their_o wickedness_n in_o his_o own_o house_n that_o jerusalem_n shall_v be_v destroy_v and_o that_o they_o themselves_o shall_v be_v carry_v into_o captivity_n in_o respect_n of_o which_o their_o faithful_a bold_a and_o plain_a deal_n according_a to_o god_n commandment_n and_o particular_a direction_n the_o priest_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n great_o move_v and_o incense_v against_o they_o 2._o pashur_n the_o highpriest_n strike_v the_o prophet_n jeremy_n upon_o the_o face_n and_o afterward_o cast_v he_o into_o prison_n also_o his_o death_n be_v conspire_v among_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o rest_n from_o time_n to_o time_n be_v little_o better_a treat_v by_o they_o it_o be_v true_a that_o there_o be_v in_o those_o time_n very_a many_o false_a prophet_n who_o pretend_v that_o they_o likewise_o be_v send_v from_o god_n do_v great_o trouble_v that_o church_n and_o state_n but_o their_o falsehood_n and_o lewdness_n ought_v neither_o to_o have_v prejudice_v the_o good_a priest_n nor_o the_o true_a prophet_n can._n xxiv_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o the_o priest_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n from_o the_o high_a to_o the_o low_a be_v not_o bind_v to_o have_v obey_v the_o direction_n which_o god_n himself_o deliver_v unto_o they_o by_o his_o prophet_n notwithstanding_o that_o now_o and_o then_o some_o of_o they_o be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n xlii_o and_o consequent_o in_o other_o cause_n be_v subject_a unto_o they_o or_o that_o the_o example_n of_o the_o true_a prophet_n be_v any_o lawful_a warrant_n either_o for_o any_o false_a prophet_n or_o for_o any_o other_o person_n or_o person_n whatsoever_o to_o have_v rail_v libel_v threaten_v or_o denounce_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n against_o any_o of_o the_o say_a priest_n according_a to_o their_o own_o malicious_a humour_n god_fw-we himself_o have_v never_o give_v they_o any_o such_o warrant_n or_o foreknowledge_n to_o pronounce_v of_o such_o particular_a judgement_n to_o come_v or_o that_o because_o the_o highpriest_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o priest_n do_v amiss_o in_o the_o malicious_a prosecution_n of_o god_n true_a prophet_n they_o may_v not_o therefore_o lawful_o take_v order_n for_o the_o punishment_n of_o false_a prophet_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xxv_o it_o be_v apparent_a likewise_o in_o the_o scripture_n that_o as_o the_o godly_a prophet_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n deal_v with_o the_o priest_n so_o do_v they_o in_o like_a manner_n deal_v with_o their_o king_n although_o otherwise_o they_o be_v their_o subject_n and_o owe_v they_o as_o much_o duty_n as_o any_o other_o 12._o nathan_n the_o prophet_n by_o god_n particular_a direction_n spare_v not_o king_n david_n to_o tell_v he_o of_o his_o offence_n 14._o no_o more_o do_v abijah_n 18._o jeroboam_n nor_o elias_n king_n ahab_n they_o denounce_v god_n judgement_n bold_o against_o they_o and_o according_o they_o come_v to_o pass_v also_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o those_o law_n which_o he_o prescribe_v other_o to_o observe_v 16._o command_v jehu_n a_o subject_a to_o be_v anoint_v king_n over_o israel_n 3._o of_o purpose_n to_o punish_v the_o sin_n of_o ahab_n and_o jezabel_n and_o according_o elizeus_fw-la the_o prophet_n cause_v jehu_n to_o be_v anoint_v and_o god_n message_n to_o be_v deliver_v unto_o he_o who_o present_o upon_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n will_n and_o the_o submission_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o captain_n of_o israel_n unto_o he_o 13._o as_o to_o their_o lawful_a king_n do_v put_v in_o execution_n the_o say_a message_n by_o kill_a joram_n before_o that_o time_n his_o sovereign_n xliii_o but_o then_o his_o subject_n and_o by_o destroy_v and_o root_n out_o the_o whole_a posterity_n son_n familiar_n and_o priest_n of_o ahab_n in_o like_a manner_n samuel_n a_o prophet_n but_o the_o subject_n of_o king_n saul_n do_v not_o refuse_v when_o god_n direct_o and_o in_o express_a term_n bid_v he_o both_o to_o tell_v his_o master_n the_o king_n that_o the_o lord_n have_v rend_v the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n from_o he_o 28._o and_o to_o anoint_v king_n david_n to_o succeed_v he_o we_o say_v to_o succeed_v he_o because_o we_o think_v that_o god_n purpose_n only_o be_v to_o cut_v off_o saul_n posterity_n from_o reign_v after_o he_o and_o not_o actual_o while_o he_o live_v to_o deprive_v he_o of_o his_o kingdom_n but_o principal_o to_o provide_v that_o david_n may_v succeed_v he_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o david_n lie_v not_o when_o notwithstanding_o that_o he_o himself_o be_v anoint_v to_o succeed_v king_n saul_n 6._o yet_o he_o call_v he_o his_o master_n and_o the_o lord_n be_v anoint_v also_o he_o pray_v that_o god_n will_v keep_v he_o from_o lay_v his_o hand_n upon_o king_n saul_n for_o that_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n anoint_v likewise_o when_o one_o of_o the_o captain_n will_v have_v slay_v king_n saul_n 9_o he_o say_v destroy_v he_o not_o for_o who_o can_v lay_v his_o hand_n upon_o the_o lord_n be_v anoint_v and_o be_v guiltless_a furthermore_o when_o the_o messenger_n bring_v he_o news_n of_o saul_n death_n 14._o be_v it_o thou_o not_o afraid_a quoth_v he_o to_o put_v forth_o thy_o hand_n to_o destroy_v the_o anoint_a of_o the_o lord_n and_o command_v the_o say_a messenger_n to_o be_v kill_v for_o his_o offence_n therein_o thy_o blood_n say_v david_n be_v upon_o thy_o own_o head_n for_o thy_o own_o mouth_n have_v witness_v against_o thou_o say_v i_o have_v slay_v the_o lord_n anointed_n beside_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o tribe_n of_o israel_n account_v saul_n to_o be_v their_o lawful_a king_n xliv_o during_o his_o life_n and_o also_o that_o they_o construe_v samuel_n word_n to_o be_v mean_v only_o of_o david_n interest_n to_o succeed_v he_o after_o his_o death_n and_o samuel_n himself_o notwithstanding_o all_o that_o he_o have_v do_v be_v by_o god_n commandment_n leave_v the_o success_n thereof_o to_o the_o disposition_n of_o his_o heavenly_a providence_n and_o afterward_o 31._o both_o honour_a saul_n before_o the_o people_n as_o his_o king_n and_o likewise_o continue_v whilst_o he_o live_v a_o dutiful_a subject_n unto_o he_o can._n xxv_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o the_o prophet_n be_v to_o blame_v for_o deal_v so_o sharp_o with_o king_n and_o prince_n be_v their_o sovereign_n as_o though_o god_n express_a commandment_n have_v not_o be_v sufficient_a to_o have_v authorize_v they_o so_o to_o have_v deal_v or_o that_o the_o example_n of_o god_n prophet_n in_o this_o behalf_n be_v a_o sufficient_a warrant_n for_o any_o false_a prophet_n or_o other_o lewd_a person_n to_o have_v rail_v and_o libel_v against_o their_o king_n or_o to_o have_v denounce_v such_o judgement_n against_o they_o as_o they_o in_o malice_n either_o desire_v or_o vain_o imagine_v or_o that_o any_o prophet_n priest_n or_o other_o person_n have_v no_o direct_a and_o express_a command_n from_o god_n may_v lawful_o imitate_v the_o say_v fact_n either_o of_o samuel_n or_o of_o elizeus_fw-la in_o anoint_v and_o design_v successor_n to_o king_n which_o otherwise_o have_v no_o
just_a interest_n title_n and_o claim_n to_o their_o kingdom_n or_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o any_o captain_n or_o subject_n high_a or_o low_o whosoever_o to_o bear_v arm_n against_o their_o sovereign_n or_o to_o lay_v violent_a hand_n upon_o his_o sacred_a person_n by_o the_o example_n of_o jehu_n notwithstanding_o that_o any_o prophet_n or_o priest_n shall_v incite_v they_o thereunto_o by_o unction_n xlv_o or_o any_o other_o mean_n whatsoever_o except_o first_o that_o it_o may_v plain_o appear_v that_o there_o be_v now_o any_o such_o prophet_n send_v extraordinary_o from_o god_n himself_o with_o sufficient_a and_o special_a authority_n in_o that_o behalf_n and_o that_o every_o such_o captain_n and_o subject_n so_o incite_v may_v be_v assure_v that_o god_n himself_o have_v in_o express_a word_n and_o by_o name_n require_v and_o command_v he_o so_o to_o do_v he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xxvi_o furthermore_o that_o nothing_o may_v be_v omit_v concern_v the_o authority_n and_o dignity_n of_o god_n prophet_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o jeremy_n in_o that_o behalf_n be_v with_o due_a care_n and_o diligence_n 10._o to_o be_v observe_v behold_v say_v the_o lord_n i_o have_v set_v thou_o over_o the_o nation_n and_o over_o the_o kingdom_n that_o thou_o may_v pluck_v up_o and_o root_v out_o and_o destroy_v and_o throw_v down_o and_o build_v and_o plant_v now_o for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n do_v at_o any_o time_n as_o a_o warrior_n and_o great_a emperor_n dispose_v of_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n or_o pluck_v up_o root_v out_o destroy_v or_o throw_v down_o king_n or_o that_o he_o build_v or_o choose_v or_o set_v up_o king_n in_o the_o place_n of_o those_o that_o he_o have_v depose_v or_o throw_v down_o the_o ancient_a writer_n do_v deliver_v the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o say_a word_n when_o they_o expound_v they_o in_o sort_n and_o effect_n as_o follow_v i_o have_v set_v thou_o over_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n that_o be_v i_o have_v impose_v upon_o thou_o the_o office_n of_o prophesy_v not_o only_o against_o the_o people_n and_o kingdom_n of_o judah_n but_o likewise_o against_o the_o nation_n and_o empire_n xlvi_o viz._n the_o ammonite_n the_o moabite_n the_o egyptian_n and_o the_o babylonian_n etc._n etc._n that_o thou_o may_v pluck_v up_o root_n out_o destroy_v and_o throw_v down_o that_o be_v that_o thou_o may_v pronounce_v that_o wicked_a nation_n shall_v be_v pull_v or_o carry_v away_o out_o of_o their_o own_o province_n and_o that_o thou_o may_v prophesy_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v destroy_v or_o kill_v and_o disperse_v in_o divers_a place_n or_o consume_v that_o thou_o may_v build_v and_o plant_v that_o be_v that_o thou_o may_v declare_v that_o both_o the_o jew_n and_o other_o nation_n shall_v after_o a_o just_a and_o due_a castigation_n be_v repair_v and_o restore_v to_o their_o own_o proper_a country_n so_o that_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o prophet_n in_o like_a manner_n although_o they_o be_v choose_v of_o god_n to_o denounce_v to_o wicked_a person_n country_n kingdom_n and_o nation_n his_o deserve_a judgement_n for_o their_o sin_n yet_o be_v they_o neither_o the_o worker_n nor_o the_o author_n of_o those_o judgement_n etc._n noah_n denounce_v the_o flood_n 5._o but_o it_o can_v therefore_o be_v true_o affirm_v that_o noah_n drown_v the_o world_n 22._o daniel_n denounce_v nebuchadnezzar_n fall_n but_o it_o be_v not_o daniel_n that_o take_v his_o heart_n and_o understanding_n from_o he_o nor_o that_o make_v he_o to_o eat_v grass_n like_o a_o ox._n samuel_n denounce_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n against_o king_n saul_n but_o samuel_n do_v not_o thrust_v he_o out_o of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o even_o so_o although_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n denounce_v the_o bondage_n of_o babylon_n and_o many_o other_o judgement_n of_o god_n against_o the_o say_a nation_n yet_o it_o can_v be_v either_o true_o say_v that_o jeremy_n deliver_v the_o whole_a kingdom_n of_o judah_n into_o captivity_n or_o that_o he_o overthrow_v or_o destroy_v any_o of_o the_o rest_n only_o he_o prophesy_v as_o god_n do_v command_v he_o and_o leave_v the_o execution_n of_o such_o judgement_n to_o the_o time_n and_o person_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v design_v and_o appoint_v for_o that_o purpose_n can._n xxvi_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v that_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n have_v any_o authority_n to_o depose_v king_n from_o their_o kingdom_n xlvii_o for_o any_o cause_n whatsoever_o and_o to_o bestow_v they_o upon_o other_o as_o he_o think_v fit_a or_o that_o albeit_o the_o say_a word_n be_v speak_v by_o the_o lord_n to_o jeremy_n and_o that_o he_o be_v otherwise_o a_o inferior_a priest_n have_v no_o authority_n literal_o so_o to_o cast_v down_o and_o set_v up_o king_n yet_o the_o high-priest_n man_n of_o great_a power_n and_o dignity_n may_v then_o have_v use_v king_n in_o that_o manner_n and_o sort_n according_a to_o their_o desert_n the_o benefit_n and_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n so_o require_v or_o that_o any_o of_o the_o high_a priest_n as_o derive_v their_o authority_n either_o from_o the_o say_a word_n speak_v to_o jeremy_n or_o from_o any_o thing_n else_o that_o be_v write_v in_o the_o scripture_n either_o might_n or_o ever_o do_v take_v upon_o they_o to_o give_v this_o neighbour_n kingdom_n to_o one_o man_n and_o that_o remote_a kingdom_n to_o another_o man_n or_o to_o depose_v any_o of_o their_o own_o king_n either_o of_o judah_n or_o of_o israel_n from_o their_o kingdom_n though_o many_o of_o they_o as_o elsewhere_o we_o have_v say_v be_v exceed_o great_a idolater_n and_o sundry_a way_n stain_v with_o lamentable_a blot_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xxvii_o the_o history_n of_o jehu_n beforementioned_a do_v put_v we_o in_o mind_n what_o be_v write_v of_o ahud_o one_o of_o the_o judge_n of_o israel_n we_o have_v elsewhere_o show_v that_o from_o joshua_n death_n to_o the_o time_n of_o saul_n god_n himself_o when_o his_o people_n be_v oppress_v by_o their_o border_a neighbour_n do_v still_o raise_v up_o unto_o they_o governor_n and_o leader_n call_v judge_n without_o respect_n either_o of_o any_o tribe_n xlviii_o more_o one_o than_o another_o or_o of_o the_o dignity_n of_o any_o person_n or_o of_o the_o people_n pleasure_n choice_n and_o consent_n first_o require_v but_o simple_o according_a to_o his_o own_o choice_n and_o wisdom_n in_o which_o number_n the_o say_v ahud_v be_v one_o the_o manner_n of_o who_o entrance_n into_o that_o charge_n we_o can_v not_o our_o course_n consider_v pretermit_v with_o silence_n the_o israelite_n have_v be_v eighteen_o year_n in_o subjection_n to_o the_o moabite_n as_o they_o have_v be_v a_o little_a before_o eight_o year_n to_o the_o aramite_n they_o know_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o they_o of_o themselves_o and_o by_o their_o own_o authority_n to_o take_v arm_n against_o the_o king_n who_o subject_n they_o be_v though_o indeed_o they_o be_v tyrant_n and_o therefore_o they_o cry_v unto_o the_o lord_n for_o succour_v who_o in_o compassion_n of_o their_o servitude_n and_o misery_n 15._o appoint_a othoniel_n to_o deliver_v they_o from_o the_o aramite_n and_o afterward_o ahud_v from_o the_o moabite_n in_o the_o choice_n of_o which_o two_o judge_n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o the_o scripture_n do_v tell_v we_o that_o god_n raise_v they_o up_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a he_o do_v so_o and_o also_o that_o in_o such_o raise_n of_o they_o to_o their_o place_n he_o make_v they_o saviour_n to_o his_o people_n as_o the_o scripture_n speak_v give_v they_o thereby_o authority_n to_o save_v and_o redeem_v the_o israelite_n from_o the_o tyrant_n that_o oppress_v they_o without_o both_o which_o prerogative_n it_o have_v be_v altogether_o unlawful_a for_o they_o to_o have_v do_v as_o they_o do_v beside_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o when_o the_o lord_n do_v thus_o choose_v out_o and_o authorise_v the_o say_v deliverer_n and_o ruler_n he_o do_v not_o only_o give_v they_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n full_a assurance_n of_o their_o lawful_a calling_n but_o likewise_o do_v furnish_v they_o with_o such_o wisdom_n and_o courage_n as_o be_v necessary_a for_o they_o in_o those_o kind_n of_o service_n so_o as_o ahud_v at_o who_o we_o principal_o aim_v be_v thus_o both_o call_v and_o instruct_v from_o god_n xlix_o how_o he_o shall_v begin_v his_o people_n deliverance_n from_o the_o moabite_n by_o kill_v of_o eglon_n their_o king_n he_o frame_v his_o course_n according_o and_o prepare_v for_o himself_o a_o meet_a weapon_n take_v a_o fit_a opportunity_n and_o thereupon_o as_o god_n have_v direct_v he_o he_o whole_o rest_v upon_o the_o lord_n assistance_n
execute_v that_o judgement_n upon_o the_o say_a king_n and_o afterward_o so_o vanquish_v the_o moabite_n and_o subdue_v they_o under_o the_o hand_n of_o israel_n as_o the_o whole_a land_n be_v at_o rest_n from_o the_o oppression_n of_o their_o enemy_n eighty_o year_n beside_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o as_o god_n appoint_v by_o name_n and_o election_n of_o moses_n joshua_n and_o saul_n and_o after_o that_o the_o kingdom_n be_v hold_v by_o succession_n the_o very_a be_v of_o the_o king_n son_n and_o the_o true_a heir_n apparent_a after_o his_o father_n death_n give_v unto_o they_o all_o the_o actual_a interest_n right_o and_o possession_n as_o possession_n in_o those_o case_n be_v to_o be_v expound_v of_o their_o several_a government_n to_o do_v any_o act_n or_o act_n as_o well_o before_o as_o after_o any_o subsequent_a formality_n and_o ceremony_n even_o so_o the_o say_a form_n of_o call_v the_o judge_n by_o god_n himself_o immediate_o make_v they_o also_o judge_n actual_o and_o do_v give_v unto_o they_o a_o full_a and_o absolute_a authority_n independent_a upon_o any_o but_o upon_o he_o that_o give_v it_o they_o to_o undertake_v any_o thing_n that_o by_o god_n direction_n appertain_v to_o their_o place_n l._n again_o there_o be_v one_o other_o example_n of_o jehu_n among_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n which_o we_o have_v before_o touch_v like_a unto_o this_o of_o ahud_o wherein_o it_o appear_v that_o he_o the_o say_v jehu_n be_v of_o a_o subject_n first_o make_v the_o king_n of_o israel_n before_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o he_o to_o have_v kill_v joram_n as_o ahud_o a_o subject_a be_v first_o make_v the_o judge_n prince_n and_o ruler_n of_o the_o people_n before_o he_o may_v have_v lawful_o kill_v king_n eglon._n both_o which_o example_n be_v but_o in_o number_n two_o throughout_o the_o history_n of_o all_o the_o prince_n judge_n and_o king_n either_o of_o judah_n or_o israel_n do_v make_v it_o know_v unto_o we_o that_o although_o the_o lord_n both_o may_v and_o be_v able_a to_o overthrow_v any_o king_n or_o emperor_n notwithstanding_o any_o claim_n right_a title_n or_o interest_n which_o they_o can_v challenge_v to_o their_o country_n kingdom_n or_o empire_n yet_o foresee_v in_o his_o heavenly_a wisdom_n and_o divine_a providence_n what_o mischief_n private_a man_n under_o colour_n of_o these_o example_n may_v otherwise_o have_v pretend_v or_o attempt_v against_o their_o sovereign_n as_o be_v either_o discontent_v of_o themselves_o or_o set_v into_o some_o fury_n by_o other_o malicious_a person_n he_o do_v so_o order_n and_o dispose_v of_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o execution_n of_o these_o such_o his_o extraordinary_a judgement_n as_o that_o thereby_o it_o may_v plain_o appear_v to_o any_o that_o shall_v not_o wilful_o hoodwink_v himself_o never_o to_o be_v lawful_a for_o any_o person_n whatsoever_o li._n upon_o pretence_n of_o any_o revelation_n inspiration_n or_o commandment_n from_o his_o divine_a majesty_n either_o to_o touch_v the_o person_n of_o his_o sovereign_n or_o to_o bear_v arm_n against_o he_o except_o god_n shall_v first_o advance_v the_o say_a person_n from_o his_o private_a estate_n and_o make_v he_o a_o king_n or_o a_o absolute_a prince_n to_o succeed_v his_o late_a master_n in_o his_o kingdom_n or_o principality_n can._n xxvii_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o any_o godly_a or_o dutiful_a subject_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n do_v ever_o by_o the_o direction_n of_o god_n spirit_n account_v this_o fact_n of_o ahud_v to_o be_v a_o lawful_a warrant_n for_o he_o to_o have_v murder_v the_o king_n under_o who_o subjection_n he_o live_v for_o any_o cause_n whatsoever_o though_o he_o shall_v have_v have_v never_o so_o many_o motion_n in_o his_o heart_n thereunto_o or_o that_o the_o highpriest_n himself_o or_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o priest_n who_o then_o live_v join_v together_o with_o he_o can_v have_v give_v authority_n to_o any_o person_n bear_v a_o subject_a to_o have_v so_o deal_v with_o his_o sovereign_n though_o he_o have_v be_v never_o so_o wicked_a and_o that_o such_o his_o death_n may_v have_v avail_v the_o church_n in_o their_o opinion_n never_o so_o great_o or_o that_o either_o the_o say_a highpriest_n and_o all_o his_o consistory_n of_o priest_n may_v lawful_o have_v encourage_v any_o who_o be_v bear_v subject_n shall_v have_v pretend_v in_o their_o zeal_n towards_o religion_n never_o so_o many_o illumination_n direction_n or_o commandment_n from_o god_n to_o have_v lay_v violent_a hand_n upon_o their_o king_n the_o lord_n be_v anoint_v iii._o for_o their_o proceed_n in_o that_o course_n or_o that_o any_o person_n bear_v a_o subject_a and_o affirm_v by_o all_o the_o argument_n which_o wit_n or_o learning_n can_v devise_v that_o god_n have_v call_v he_o to_o murder_v the_o king_n de_fw-fr facto_fw-la under_o who_o he_o live_v yea_o though_o he_o shall_v have_v first_o procure_v himself_o to_o be_v proclaim_v and_o anoint_a king_n as_o adonijah_n do_v and_o shall_v afterward_o have_v lay_v violent_a hand_n upon_o his_o master_n aught_o therefore_o to_o have_v be_v believe_v of_o any_o that_o fear_v god_n except_o which_o be_v impossible_a he_o shall_v first_o prove_v his_o credit_n in_o so_o affirm_v to_o be_v equal_a with_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o man_n be_v bind_v as_o strict_o to_o believe_v he_o in_o say_v that_o god_n call_v and_o stir_v he_o up_o to_o the_o perpetrate_a of_o that_o fact_n as_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o who_o instinct_n the_o scripture_n be_v write_v when_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o god_n raise_v up_o ahud_o for_o a_o saviour_n to_o his_o people_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xxviii_o hitherto_o in_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o that_o mild_a and_o temperate_a monarchical_a government_n which_o it_o please_v god_n to_o establish_v among_o his_o own_o people_n the_o duty_n of_o inferior_a person_n and_o subject_n of_o all_o sort_n be_v ever_o obedience_n they_o neither_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o choose_v their_o governor_n nor_o to_o bear_v arm_n against_o they_o howbeit_o it_o happen_v otherwise_o among_o some_o other_o nation_n liij_o nimrod_n not_o content_v himself_o with_o the_o portion_n which_o by_o noah_n general_a direction_n appertain_v unto_o he_o can_v never_o have_v erect_v his_o tyrannical_a government_n if_o a_o number_n of_o rebellious_a and_o discontent_a person_n have_v not_o cleaved_a unto_o he_o as_o the_o factious_a sichemite_n do_v to_o abimelech_n and_o make_v he_o their_o king_n the_o roman_n have_v king_n rebel_v against_o they_o and_o take_v the_o government_n into_o their_o own_o hand_n the_o execution_n whereof_o do_v trouble_v they_o exceed_o sometime_o they_o commit_v it_o to_o many_o and_o sometime_o to_o few_o their_o two_o annual_a consul_n please_v they_o long_o but_o at_o the_o last_o they_o think_v it_o fit_a to_o have_v a_o dictator_n till_o in_o the_o end_n julius_z caesar_z and_o augustus_n reduce_v their_o government_n again_o into_o a_o monarchy_n and_o as_o the_o roman_n deal_v with_o their_o king_n so_o do_v the_o people_n in_o some_o other_o country_n with_o their_o governor_n whereupon_o divers_a other_o kind_n of_o government_n term_v according_a to_o their_o temper_n aristocratical_a political_n tyrannical_a oligarchical_a or_o democratical_a etc._n etc._n be_v afterward_o settle_v in_o many_o place_n the_o inconvenience_n of_o which_o form_n of_o government_n be_v find_v upon_o many_o occasion_n oftentimes_o to_o be_v very_o great_a the_o people_n have_v be_v drive_v of_o necessity_n in_o sundry_a country_n to_o frame_v they_o again_o as_o near_o as_o they_o can_v to_o the_o monarchical_a government_n either_o by_o elect_v to_o themselves_o king_n upon_o certain_a condition_n to_o reign_v over_o they_o liv_o or_o by_o appointment_n of_o duke_n or_o prince_n to_o be_v the_o manager_n of_o their_o chief_a affair_n according_a as_o they_o themselves_o shall_v direct_v they_o beside_o as_o the_o say_v rebellious_a humour_n of_o the_o people_n decline_v from_o their_o obedience_n do_v in_o many_o country_n alter_v that_o temperate_a and_o fatherly_a government_n which_o noah_n have_v prescribe_v unto_o his_o offspring_n and_o which_o god_n himself_o establish_v afterward_o among_o his_o own_o people_n so_o do_v the_o ambitious_a and_o insatiable_a disposition_n of_o sundry_a no_o less_o elsewhere_o impeach_v the_o same_o as_o by_o the_o beginning_n and_o progress_n of_o the_o four_o monarchy_n it_o be_v most_o apparent_a 2._o in_o all_o which_o abberration_n from_o the_o say_v mild_a and_o temperate_a government_n 4._o before_o specify_v almighty_a god_n who_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o any_o nation_n or_o country_n alter_v their_o government_n and_o governor_n transfer_v set_v up_o and_o bestow_v kingdom_n as_o it_o seem_v best_a to_o his_o heavenly_a wisdom_n do_v ever_o by_o his_o foresight_n and_o providence_n so_o
other_o bring_v a_o great_a detriment_n for_o want_n of_o ability_n unto_o they_o for_o one_o of_o the_o say_a captain_n have_v get_v to_o himself_o a_o very_a strong_a kingdom_n in_o syria_n and_o another_o of_o they_o in_o egypt_n the_o jew_n dwel_v betwixt_o they_o both_o be_v miserable_o on_o every_o side_n vex_v by_o they_o lxvi_o sometime_o the_o egyptian_n by_o oppression_n and_o force_n bring_v they_o under_o their_o subjection_n and_o impose_v great_a tribute_n upon_o they_o and_o sometime_o the_o syrian_n grow_v mighty_a than_o the_o egyptian_n do_v likewise_o very_o great_o afflict_v they_o especial_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n who_o invasion_n and_o government_n be_v most_o unjust_a and_o tyrannical_a he_o shed_v innocent_a blood_n on_o every_o side_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n 37._o spoil_v the_o temple_n erect_v in_o it_o the_o abomination_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v name_v the_o temple_n of_o jupiter_n olympius_n 4._o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n by_o his_o commandment_n be_v cut_v in_o piece_n and_o burn_v and_o they_o with_o who_o they_o be_v find_v be_v put_v to_o death_n a_o general_a commandment_n be_v by_o he_o publish_v that_o they_o shall_v offer_v no_o more_o sacrifice_n nor_o circumcise_v their_o child_n nor_o execute_v any_o other_o part_n of_o their_o own_o law_n in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n but_o whole_o to_o conform_v themselves_o therein_o to_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o gentile_n whereupon_o the_o people_n by_o heap_n forsake_v the_o lord_n and_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o idol_n and_o such_o as_o refuse_v so_o to_o do_v choose_v rather_o to_o obey_v god_n than_o man_n be_v most_o cruel_o slay_v and_o murder_v by_o thousand_o until_o mattathias_n move_v with_o the_o monstrous_a cruelty_n and_o tyranny_n of_o the_o say_v antiochus_n make_v open_a resistance_n the_o government_n of_o that_o tyrant_n be_v not_o then_o either_o general_o receive_v by_o submission_n lxvii_o or_o settle_v by_o continuance_n it_o be_v not_o pertinent_a to_o our_o purpose_n to_o intermeddle_v with_o sundry_a question_n which_o may_v here_o arise_v only_o we_o observe_v that_o mattathias_n undertake_v that_o charge_n that_o he_o commend_v the_o same_o afterward_o to_o his_o son_n and_o that_o it_o continue_v in_o they_o and_o their_o posterity_n until_o both_o they_o and_o their_o whole_a country_n be_v vanquish_v by_o the_o roman_n can._n xxxi_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o the_o jew_n general_o both_o priest_n and_o people_n be_v not_o the_o subject_n of_o alexander_n after_o his_o authority_n be_v settle_v among_o they_o as_o they_o have_v be_v before_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o king_n of_o babylon_n and_o persia_n or_o that_o they_o may_v lawful_o have_v bear_v arm_n against_o he_o or_o that_o they_o be_v not_o all_o bound_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o long_a life_n and_o prosperity_n both_o of_o alexander_n and_o his_o empire_n as_o they_o have_v be_v bind_v before_o to_o pray_v for_o the_o life_n and_o prosperity_n of_o the_o other_o say_v king_n and_o their_o kingdom_n whilst_o they_o live_v under_o their_o subjection_n or_o consequent_o that_o they_o may_v lawful_o upon_o any_o occasion_n whatsoever_o have_v offer_v violence_n and_o destruction_n either_o to_o their_o person_n or_o to_o their_o kingdom_n for_o the_o long_a continuance_n and_o prosperity_n whereof_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o pray_v or_o that_o after_o the_o jew_n be_v deliver_v from_o their_o servitude_n under_o the_o king_n of_o syria_n lxviij_o and_o the_o government_n over_o they_o be_v settle_v in_o mattathias_n posterity_n it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o people_n upon_o any_o occasion_n to_o have_v rebel_v against_o they_o or_o to_o have_v offer_v violence_n to_o their_o person_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xxxii_o the_o affliction_n which_o the_o jew_n endure_v whilst_o the_o government_n of_o the_o grecian_n last_v be_v much_o the_o more_o grievous_a unto_o they_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a disorder_n which_o be_v then_o among_o their_o priest_n for_o whereas_o they_o shall_v have_v be_v a_o stay_n and_o a_o comfort_n unto_o they_o in_o their_o great_a misery_n their_o negligence_n one_o way_n and_o their_o ambition_n another_o way_n in_o strive_v about_o the_o high_a priesthood_n do_v so_o distract_v they_o into_o part_n take_v as_o that_o thereby_o great_a effusion_n of_o blood_n do_v oftentimes_o ensue_v short_o after_o jaddus_n time_n this_o be_v the_o general_a report_n which_o for_o their_o wickedness_n be_v give_v out_o of_o they_o 14._o the_o priest_n be_v now_o no_o more_o diligent_a about_o the_o altar_n but_o despise_v the_o temple_n and_o regard_v not_o the_o sacrifice_n they_o do_v not_o set_v by_o the_o honour_n of_o their_o father_n but_o like_v of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o gentile_n most_o of_o all_o the_o temple_n be_v full_a of_o dissoluteness_n and_o gluttony_n of_o the_o gentile_n which_o dally_v with_o harlot_n and_o have_v to_o do_v with_o woman_n within_o the_o circuit_n of_o holy_a place_n 4._o and_o bring_v in_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v not_o lawful_a lxix_o the_o altar_n also_o be_v full_a of_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v abominable_a and_o forbid_v by_o the_o law_n and_o two_o or_o three_o of_o the_o high_a priest_n applaud_v thereunto_o 6._o simon_n the_o highpriest_n leave_v three_o son_n behind_o he_o onias_n jason_n and_o menelaus_n be_v not_o long_o dead_a but_o jason_n for_o three_o hundred_o and_o sixty_o talent_n of_o silver_n procure_v such_o assistance_n of_o antiochus_n king_n of_o syria_n as_o he_o thrust_v his_o elder_a brother_n onias_n out_o of_o the_o high-priesthood_n and_o not_o long_o after_o have_v the_o same_o measure_n repay_v unto_o he_o again_o by_o his_o young_a brother_n menelaus_n who_o upon_o some_o cunning_a information_n and_o for_o six_o hundred_o and_o sixty_o talent_n get_v the_o place_n himself_o 5._o whereupon_o jason_n assemble_v force_n drive_v menelaus_n into_o a_o castle_n slay_v the_o citizen_n without_o mercy_n and_o in_o the_o end_n be_v repulse_v die_v abroad_o as_o a_o exile_n menelaus_z afterward_o cause_v his_o elder_a brother_n onias_n 34._o to_o be_v murder_v because_o he_o blame_v he_o for_o steal_v certain_a vessel_n of_o gold_n out_o of_o the_o temple_n next_o menelaus_n succeed_v alcimus_n whereas_o onias_n the_o son_n of_o onias_n beforementioned_a shall_v in_o right_n have_v have_v that_o dignity_n of_o all_o which_o four_o person_n eminent_a in_o their_o time_n these_o thing_n be_v leave_v for_o record_n unto_o posterity_n lxx_o jason_n to_o get_v antiochus_n good_a will_n for_o the_o high-priesthood_n promise_v he_o beside_o his_o great_a bribe_n to_o set_v up_o a_o school_n of_o gentilism_n likewise_o to_o build_v a_o brothel-house_n by_o the_o temple_n and_o that_o the_o people_n of_o jerusalem_n shall_v be_v name_v antiochian_o after_o the_o king_n name_n he_o draw_v his_o kinsman_n to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o send_v to_o tyrus_n three_o hundred_o drachm_n of_o silver_n for_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o hercules_n menelaus_z also_o take_v the_o like_a course_n or_o rather_o a_o worse_a for_o beside_o that_o he_o conform_v himself_o whole_o in_o effect_n to_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o grecian_n 15._o it_o be_v further_a thus_o write_v of_o he_o antiochus_n go_v into_o the_o most_o holy_a temple_n 3._o have_v menelaus_n that_o traitor_n to_o the_o law_n and_o to_o his_o own_o country_n to_o be_v his_o guide_n he_o thrust_v himself_o into_o the_o king_n army_n against_o judas_n maccabaeus_n and_o the_o city_n of_o jerusalem_n hope_v thereupon_o to_o have_v attain_v that_o government_n but_o lysias_n the_o king_n lieutenant_n cross_v his_o purpose_n therein_o and_o inform_v the_o king_n 15._o that_o he_o the_o say_v menelaus_n have_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o the_o mischief_n which_o have_v ensue_v the_o war_n with_o the_o jew_n as_o be_v the_o man_n who_o persuade_v his_o father_n antiochus_n epiphanes_n to_o compel_v they_o to_o forsake_v the_o law_n of_o their_o father_n add_v thereunto_o that_o whilst_o menelaus_n live_v the_o jew_n will_v never_o be_v quiet_a whereupon_o the_o king_n command_v he_o to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n he_o be_v smother_v in_o ash_n lxxi_o because_o he_o have_v commit_v many_o sin_n by_o the_o altar_n who_o fire_n and_o ash_n be_v holy_a alcimus_n ibid._n the_o highpriest_n next_o succeed_v be_v no_o soon_o in_o his_o place_n but_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v the_o captain_n of_o all_o the_o ungodly_a man_n of_o israel_n 5._o and_o solicit_v king_n demetrius_n to_o make_v war_n against_o judas_n maccabaeus_n complain_v that_o he_o have_v kill_v all_o the_o king_n friend_n the_o king_n thus_o instigate_v send_v a_o army_n against_o jerusalem_n with_o one_o bacchides_n and_o alcimus_n who_o pretend_v that_o they_o come_v in_o peace_n and_o be_v thereupon_o trust_v
by_o the_o roman_n be_v poison_v by_o one_o maticus_fw-la hope_v thereby_o that_o hircanus_n lxxviij_o the_o highpriest_n may_v have_v get_v a_o more_o absolute_a authority_n and_o have_v be_v the_o chief_a governor_n alexander_n 10._o the_o son_n of_o aristobulus_n have_v be_v before_o very_o troublsome_a and_o carry_v many_o after_o he_o to_o their_o destruction_n but_o antigonus_n his_o brother_n do_v far_o exceed_v he_o who_o by_o the_o help_n of_o the_o parthian_n rise_v up_o against_o herod_n the_o successor_n of_o antipater_n and_o take_v that_o government_n upon_o he_o cut_v off_o hircanus_n his_o uncle_n ear_n 13._o that_o thereby_o he_o may_v be_v unable_a afterward_o to_o bear_v any_o more_o to_o his_o prejudice_n the_o office_n of_o the_o highpriest_n but_o short_o after_o he_o be_v subdue_v and_o put_v to_o death_n and_o his_o father_n before_o he_o be_v poison_v by_o pompey_n follower_n howbeit_o no_o soon_o be_v these_o maccabee_n thus_o suppress_v but_o divers_a other_o rebellious_a person_n thrust_v forward_o the_o people_n into_o arm_n under_o pretence_n of_o their_o love_n they_o bear_v to_o their_o country_n and_o to_o the_o ancient_a liberty_n thereof_o in_o which_o their_o wicked_a fury_n sometime_o they_o be_v content_a to_o follow_v this_o man_n as_o their_o king_n and_o sometime_o that_o man_n 12._o such_o as_o be_v one_o simon_n one_o athrogus_n and_o manahemus_n 17._o all_o of_o they_o very_o lewd_a and_o base_a companion_n and_o at_o some_o other_o time_n every_o rebellious_a rout_n or_o company_n will_v needs_o have_v a_o king_n of_o their_o own_o lxxix_o whereby_o in_o every_o corner_n of_o that_o commonwealth_n there_o be_v a_o petty_a king_n 2._o who_o still_o lead_v the_o people_n by_o heap_n to_o the_o slaughter_n and_o perish_v themselves_o with_o they_o also_o there_o be_v some_o among_o they_o who_o find_v no_o good_a success_n by_o have_v of_o such_o king_n do_v run_v into_o a_o contrary_a course_n affirm_v it_o to_o be_v unlawful_a for_o the_o jew_n to_o acknowledge_v any_o man_n but_o god_n himself_o to_o be_v their_o king_n 12._o and_o that_o they_o ought_v rather_o to_o suffer_v death_n than_o to_o call_v any_o man_n lord_n the_o sum_n be_v that_o notwithstanding_o any_o great_a distraction_n dissension_n or_o bloody_a combat_n among_o themselves_o which_o be_v very_o many_o and_o strange_a their_o heart_n be_v so_o harden_v in_o rebellion_n against_o the_o roman_n and_o their_o governor_n as_o they_o refuse_v either_o to_o pay_v they_o any_o more_o tribute_n or_o to_o pray_v for_o they_o but_o stand_v upon_o their_o wall_n when_o they_o be_v besiege_v caesari_n &_o patri_fw-la ejus_fw-la maledicebant_fw-la there_o be_v never_o we_o think_v so_o obstinate_a and_o desperate_a a_o people_n for_o in_o their_o great_a extremity_n and_o when_o they_o see_v nothing_o but_o imminent_a death_n destruction_n of_o the_o temple_n lxxx_o and_o the_o extirpation_n of_o their_o whole_a nation_n no_o reasonable_a condition_n or_o persuasion_n can_v move_v they_o titus_n himself_o make_v a_o notable_a oration_n unto_o they_o and_o command_v josephus_n to_o deliver_v his_o mind_n at_o another_o time_n more_o ample_o if_o it_o have_v be_v possible_a to_o have_v reclaim_v they_o which_o duty_n so_o impose_v upon_o he_o josephus_n perform_v very_o eloquent_o he_o tell_v they_o that_o thou_o the_o roman_n have_v deal_v sometime_o very_o hardly_o with_o they_o yet_o their_o rebellion_n be_v ever_o the_o cause_n of_o it_o that_o albeit_o man_n may_v lawful_o fight_v in_o defence_n of_o their_o country_n when_o it_o be_v invade_v by_o any_o yet_o be_v subdue_v and_o a_o new_a government_n settle_v among_o they_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a by_o rebellion_n under_o pretence_n of_o liberty_n to_o cast_v off_o that_o yoke_n that_o their_o forefather_n be_v in_o bondage_n under_o the_o king_n of_o egypt_n and_o babylon_n and_o divers_a time_n in_o many_o other_o distress_n do_v never_o of_o themselves_o by_o force_n of_o arm_n seek_v their_o liberty_n or_o deliverance_n but_o ever_o expect_v the_o lord_n leisure_n who_o always_o in_o due_a time_n have_v compassion_n upon_o they_o and_o that_o although_o they_o be_v then_o in_o the_o great_a distress_n that_o ever_o people_n be_v and_o can_v expect_v nothing_o but_o utter_a ruin_n and_o desolation_n yet_o if_o then_o they_o will_v submit_v themselves_o they_o may_v be_v receive_v to_o mercy_n for_o say_v he_o the_o roman_n ask_v but_o their_o ordinary_a tribute_n lxxxi_o which_o your_o forefather_n pay_v unto_o their_o predecessor_n and_o if_o yet_o they_o may_v obtain_v the_o same_o they_o will_v neither_o destroy_v your_o city_n nor_o touch_v your_o sanctuary_n but_o grant_v unto_o you_o free_o your_o family_n your_o possession_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o your_o sacred_a law_n but_o all_o these_o offer_v they_o refuse_v howbeit_o the_o compassion_n of_o titus_n towards_o they_o still_o continue_v he_o again_o when_o they_o see_v their_o destruction_n more_o apparent_o require_v the_o say_a josephus_n to_o deliver_v his_o mind_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n to_o their_o chief_a captain_n that_o he_o have_v do_v before_o to_o the_o people_n which_o he_o accomplish_v but_o in_o the_o hear_n again_o of_o the_o people_n very_o thorough_o and_o in_o the_o end_n find_v they_o obstinate_a i_o myself_o deserve_v blame_v say_v he_o qui●●_n haec_fw-la adversus_fw-la fata_fw-la suadeo_fw-la deique_fw-la sententiâ_fw-la condemnatos_fw-la seruare_fw-la contendo_fw-la whereupon_o short_o after_o titus_n protest_v how_o loath_a he_o be_v thereunto_o assail_v they_o with_o all_o his_o force_n which_o slay_v a_o infinite_a number_n of_o they_o burn_v the_o temple_n and_o destroy_v the_o city_n since_o which_o time_n they_o that_o then_o escape_v and_o the_o rest_n of_o all_o the_o race_n of_o the_o jew_n have_v be_v disperse_v far_o and_o near_o and_o live_v like_o a_o curse_a generation_n in_o all_o slavery_n and_o servitude_n so_o that_o although_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o this_o heavy_a judgement_n of_o god_n fall_v upon_o they_o principal_o for_o the_o hardness_n of_o their_o heart_n in_o that_o they_o do_v not_o only_o refuse_v to_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n lxxxii_o but_o likewise_o most_o malicious_o unjust_o and_o shameful_o put_v he_o to_o death_n yet_o the_o immediate_a and_o apparent_a cause_n of_o it_o be_v their_o never-before-heard-of-like_a obstinate_a rebellion_n can._n xxxiii_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o aristobulus_n the_o father_n or_o either_o of_o his_o two_o son_n alexander_n or_o antigonus_n have_v all_o of_o they_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o government_n of_o the_o roman_n do_v not_o sin_n when_o afterward_o they_o rebel_v against_o they_o or_o that_o maticus_fw-la do_v not_o very_o wicked_o in_o poison_v of_o antipater_n because_o he_o think_v thereby_o the_o better_a to_o strengthen_v hircanus_n in_o his_o high-priesthood_n or_o that_o the_o people_n ought_v not_o to_o detest_v all_o such_o seditious_a person_n as_o under_o pretence_n of_o liberty_n and_o religion_n shall_v solicit_v they_o to_o rebellion_n or_o that_o the_o jew_n be_v not_o bind_v both_o to_o have_v pay_v their_o tribute_n and_o to_o have_v pray_v for_o caesar_n without_o dissimulation_n sincere_o and_o true_o notwithstanding_o any_o pretence_n of_o tyranny_n which_o they_o have_v wilful_o draw_v upon_o their_o own_o head_n or_o of_o any_o cause_n whatsoever_o or_o that_o such_o as_o curse_a caesar_n their_o chief_a governor_n do_v not_o thereby_o deserve_v any_o corporal_a punishment_n which_o be_v due_a to_o be_v inflict_v upon_o such_o traitor_n or_o that_o the_o rebellion_n against_o any_o king_n absolute_a prince_n or_o civil_a magistrate_n lxxxiii_o for_o any_o cause_n whatsoever_o be_v not_o a_o sin_n very_o detestable_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o by_o all_o that_o fear_v the_o lord_n to_o be_v eschew_v because_o it_o ever_o tend_v to_o mischief_n and_o sometime_o to_o the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o kingdom_n principality_n and_o country_n where_o it_o be_v raise_v he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xxxiv_o we_o have_v speak_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n of_o the_o rebellion_n of_o the_o jew_n against_o their_o civil_a governor_n and_o the_o success_n thereof_o we_o make_v no_o mention_n either_o of_o the_o priest_n or_o of_o any_o of_o those_o sect_n of_o religion_n which_o then_o bare_a sway_n among_o they_o indeed_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o if_o they_o have_v do_v their_o duty_n the_o people_n upon_o their_o repentance_n may_v have_v regain_v god_n favour_n and_o prevent_v that_o utter_a desolation_n but_o it_o happen_v otherwise_o 18._o two_o factious_a person_n judas_n and_o mathias_n the_o best_a learned_a man_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o most_o skilful_a interpreter_n of_o the_o law_n of_o their_o country_n grow_v into_o great_a favour_n with_o the_o people_n because_o of_o their_o say_a skill_n
sort_n to_o be_v distinguish_v as_o god_n himself_o be_v not_o divide_v although_o the_o three_o person_n in_o trinity_n be_v right_o hold_v to_o be_v indeed_o distinguish_v and_o yet_o all_o the_o say_a action_n and_o propriety_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n of_o christ_n distinguish_v as_o we_o have_v express_v they_o be_v be_v notwithstanding_o very_o true_o to_o be_v affirm_v of_o his_o sacred_a person_n the_o reason_n whereof_o have_v be_v before_o touch_v and_o it_o be_v this_o because_o see_v that_o both_o the_o nature_n be_v join_v together_o in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n by_o a_o hypostatical_a and_o consequent_o a_o true_a and_o essential_a union_n so_o as_o christ_n be_v thereby_o both_o true_a god_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o divine_a nature_n and_o true_a man_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o humane_a nature_n whatsoever_o be_v the_o propriety_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o of_o the_o humane_a nature_n the_o same_o be_v whole_o and_o altogether_o in_o christ_n and_o be_v necessary_o therefore_o to_o be_v affirm_v of_o he_o both_o essential_o and_o proper_o in_o respect_n whereof_o we_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v dead_a and_o that_o he_o can_v not_o die_v that_o he_o be_v both_o finite_a and_o infinite_a eternal_a and_o temporal_a in_o every_o place_n and_o yet_o circumscribe_v in_o one_o place_n for_o of_o necessity_n whatsoever_o be_v the_o property_n of_o the_o humane_a nature_n the_o same_o be_v true_o and_o proper_o to_o be_v affirm_v de_fw-la vero_fw-la homine_fw-la and_o whatsoever_o be_v the_o propriety_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n the_o same_o be_v likewise_o to_o be_v affirm_v de_fw-la vero_fw-la deo_fw-la christ_n be_v out_o of_o all_o controversy_n among_o the_o child_n of_o god_n &_o verus_fw-la homo_fw-la &_o verus_fw-la deus_fw-la and_o thus_o we_o have_v after_o a_o sort_n both_o brief_o and_o true_o set_v down_o the_o force_n and_o efficacy_n of_o the_o hypostatical_a union_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n of_o christ_n be_v distinguish_v but_o no_o way_n confound_v as_o the_o same_o together_o with_o the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o all_o other_o necessary_a article_n concern_v the_o bless_a trinity_n do_v by_o the_o scripture_n most_o true_o expound_v in_o the_o creed_n abovementioned_a many_o way_n very_o notable_o appear_v to_o this_o purpose_n much_o more_o may_v have_v here_o be_v add_v by_o we_o if_o our_o course_n consider_v we_o have_v think_v it_o necessary_a only_o we_o have_v think_v it_o fit_a furthermore_o to_o profess_v and_o make_v it_o thereby_o know_v to_o all_o man_n that_o there_o be_v some_o other_o creed_n make_v by_o other_o council_n and_o particular_a bishop_n like_v to_o athanasius_n and_o other_o worthy_a person_n as_o irenaeus_n creed_n tertullian_n creed_n as_o we_o may_v so_o term_v it_o damasus_n creed_n the_o creed_n ascribe_v to_o st._n ambrose_n and_o to_o st._n augustine_n te_fw-la deum_fw-la laudamus_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o creed_n of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o toledo_n st._n jerome_n creed_n the_o creed_n ascribe_v to_o leo_n which_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o six_o council_n of_o constantinople_n against_o the_o monothelite_n hold_v that_o in_o christ_n both_o god_n and_o man_n there_o be_v but_o one_o will_n all_o of_o they_o tend_v to_o the_o set_v forth_o the_o orthodoxal_a and_o true_a doctrine_n of_o one_o god_n in_o trinity_n and_o trinity_n in_o unity_n not_o confound_v the_o person_n nor_o divide_v the_o substance_n and_o of_o one_o christ_n true_a god_n and_o true_a man_n not_o confound_v his_o nature_n nor_o divide_v his_o person_n which_o creed_n we_o do_v receive_v embrace_v and_o reverence_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o they_o have_v be_v receive_v embrace_v and_o reverence_v hitherto_o by_o all_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n in_o as_o much_o as_o they_o agree_v both_o with_o the_o scripture_n with_o the_o apostle_n creed_n with_o the_o four_o creed_n mention_v of_o the_o four_o first_o general_a council_n and_o with_o the_o athanasian_n creed_n which_o contain_v in_o they_o that_o faith_n which_o be_v then_o and_o so_o still_o aught_o to_o be_v account_v the_o true_a catholic_n faith_n nothing_o in_o effect_n be_v contain_v in_o all_o the_o creed_n before_o by_o we_o specify_v which_o may_v not_o be_v deduce_v by_o necessary_a consequence_n out_o of_o the_o say_v athanasian_n creed_n and_o the_o conclusion_n of_o which_o creed_n be_v in_o these_o word_n express_v this_o be_v the_o catholic_n faith_n which_o except_o a_o man_n believe_v faithful_o he_o can_v be_v save_v to_o which_o conclusion_n that_o in_o sense_n be_v very_a consonant_n wherewith_o damasus_n do_v end_v his_o creed_n in_o these_o word_n read_v these_o thing_n believe_v they_o retain_v they_o to_o this_o faith_n submit_v thy_o soul_n and_o thou_o shall_v obtain_v life_n and_o reward_n from_o christ_n in_o which_o creed_n contain_v the_o catholic_n faith_n in_o those_o day_n or_o in_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n we_o have_v think_v it_o good_a here_o to_o remember_v that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o one_o article_n to_o warrant_v or_o prove_v those_o new_a article_n which_o be_v coin_v long_o after_o the_o make_n of_o any_o of_o the_o say_a creed_n by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o be_v add_v to_o the_o nicene_n creed_n by_o pius_n iv._o in_o the_o profess_v of_o the_o roman_a faith_n especial_o that_o new_a article_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n which_o be_v still_o so_o stiff_o maintain_v and_o urge_v upon_o many_o under_o pain_n of_o the_o loss_n of_o their_o soul_n viz._n that_o it_o be_v altogether_o necessary_a for_o they_o if_o they_o will_v be_v save_v to_o be_v obedient_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o new_a article_n be_v but_o a_o extravagant_a conclusion_n make_v by_o a_o very_a strange_a man_n and_o build_v upon_o as_o strange_a collection_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n we_o leave_v it_o for_o a_o novelty_n unto_o all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_n faith_n and_o will_v now_o address_v ourselves_o to_o prosecute_v the_o same_o course_n and_o point_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o we_o hold_v in_o the_o old_a cap._n ii_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a rule_n in_o divinity_n that_o grace_n do_v not_o destroy_v nature_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n that_o be_v foretell_v shall_v break_v the_o serpent_n head_n do_v not_o abolish_v the_o moral_a law_n the_o ceremony_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o shadow_v and_o signify_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n have_v no_o power_n to_o extinguish_v the_o law_n first_o imprint_v in_o man_n heart_n and_o afterward_o engrave_v in_o table_n of_o stone_n by_o the_o finger_n of_o god_n the_o prophet_n foretell_v the_o come_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o passion_n do_v likewise_o reprove_v all_o sin_n and_o offence_n commit_v against_o the_o ten_o commandment_n christ_n testify_v of_o himself_o that_o he_o come_v not_o to_o destroy_v the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n 17._o but_o to_o fullfil_v they_o by_o his_o death_n he_o have_v deliver_v we_o from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n but_o not_o from_o the_o obedience_n of_o it_o and_o st._n paul_n say_v 13._o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o make_v the_o law_n of_o none_o effect_v through_o faith_n but_o they_o do_v thereby_o establish_v the_o law_n for_o that_o faith_n do_v only_o apprehend_v christ_n true_o to_o salvation_n which_o work_v by_o charity_n that_o be_v which_o purge_v the_o conscience_n from_o dead_a work_n to_o serve_v the_o live_a god_n and_o bring_v forth_o by_o the_o spirit_n obedience_n to_o the_o precept_n and_o law_n of_o god_n it_o have_v be_v show_v by_o we_o at_o large_a in_o the_o former_a book_n that_o although_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v make_v the_o world_n do_v by_o his_o mighty_a power_n and_o divine_a providence_n retain_v as_o it_o be_v in_o his_o own_o hand_n the_o general_a rule_n and_o government_n of_o it_o yet_o for_o a_o more_o visible_a benefit_n and_o comfort_n to_o mankind_n he_o do_v divide_v and_o distribute_v the_o same_o into_o divers_a country_n principality_n and_o kingdom_n and_o ordain_v civil_a magistracy_n do_v not_o only_o appoint_v sovereign_a prince_n and_o king_n as_o his_o deputy_n and_o lieutenant_n upon_o earth_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v under_o he_o such_o country_n and_o kingdom_n as_o he_o have_v allot_v unto_o they_o but_o do_v likewise_o tie_v mankind_n by_o one_o of_o the_o moral_a law_n engrave_v in_o their_o heart_n that_o they_o shall_v honour_v they_o serve_v they_o and_o be_v obedient_a unto_o they_o which_o particular_a commandment_n be_v no_o more_o abolish_v by_o the_o incarnation_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n than_o be_v all_o the_o rest_n nay_o it_o be_v in_o truth_n of_o such_o force_n and_o public_a note_n as_o that_o our_o
know_v not_o what_o new_a christianity_n or_o that_o there_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v now_o among_o christian_n ecclesiastical_a court_n for_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n as_o well_o as_o there_o be_v such_o court_n among_o the_o jew_n for_o such_o kind_n of_o cause_n or_o that_o all_o christian_n be_v not_o now_o bind_v to_o repair_v as_o well_o to_o ecclesiastical_a court_n and_o governor_n for_o reformation_n of_o such_o offence_n as_o be_v of_o ecclesiastical_a counusance_n as_o the_o jew_n be_v bind_v to_o repair_v to_o their_o sanhedrim_n to_o have_v those_o evil_n redress_v that_o be_v to_o be_v reform_v by_o those_o court_n or_o that_o as_o many_o as_o do_v profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v true_a imitator_n of_o christ_n in_o their_o life_n and_o conversation_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o such_o obedience_n unto_o their_o prince_n and_o ruler_n how_o evil-disposed_n soever_o they_o be_v yea_o though_o they_o seek_v their_o life_n as_o christ_n show_v and_o perform_v both_o to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o temporal_a state_n of_o the_o jew_n at_o what_o time_n he_o know_v they_o be_v plot_v his_o death_n he_o do_v great_o err_v cap._n v._n the_o sum_n of_o the_o chapter_n follow_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n do_v not_o alter_v the_o form_n of_o temporal_a government_n establish_v by_o himself_o long_o before_o his_o incarnation_n and_o that_o therefore_o emperor_n king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n though_o they_o be_v then_o infidel_n be_v nevertheless_o to_o be_v obey_v by_o the_o subject_n as_o former_o from_o the_o beginning_n they_o have_v be_v it_o have_v be_v before_o observe_v by_o we_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n whilst_o he_o live_v in_o the_o world_n be_v no_o temporal_a king_n nor_o have_v any_o temporal_a dominion_n court_n possession_n regal_a state_n dukes_z earls_z lord_n or_o any_o other_o subject_n as_o other_o temporal_a king_n have_v to_o obey_v and_o serve_v he_o but_o perhaps_o after_o his_o resurrection_n it_o be_v for_o otherwise_o with_o he_o indeed_o so_o it_o be_v for_o whereas_o the_o son_n of_o god_n god_n himself_o equal_a to_o the_o father_n by_o be_v make_v man_n do_v cease_v to_o put_v in_o practice_n the_o glory_n and_o majesty_n of_o his_o deity_n in_o his_o humane_a nature_n otherwise_o than_o by_o do_v such_o miracle_n as_o he_o think_v necessary_a for_o the_o conversion_n of_o those_o who_o be_v to_o believe_v in_o he_o now_o after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n the_o state_n of_o his_o humane_a nature_n be_v become_v as_o it_o may_v well_o be_v say_v much_o more_o glorious_a because_o his_o divine_a nature_n do_v communicate_v unto_o his_o humane_a nature_n so_o many_o divine_a dignity_n and_o operation_n of_o his_o deity_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o hypostatical_a union_n betwixt_o they_o as_o the_o same_o be_v capable_a of_o without_o turn_v of_o his_o divine_a nature_n into_o his_o humane_a nature_n it_o be_v always_o to_o be_v understand_v that_o the_o say_v hypostatical_a and_o real_a union_n notwithstanding_o there_o be_v never_o any_o confusion_n betwixt_o the_o two_o nature_n of_o christ_n both_o of_o they_o always_o retain_v their_o distinct_a and_o essential_a propriety_n which_o ground_n observe_v we_o may_v true_o say_v that_o the_o attribute_n be_v admirable_a which_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o say_a union_n be_v and_o may_v be_v ascribe_v unto_o our_o saviour_n christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n especial_o after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n for_o some_o short_a proof_n hereof_o these_o follow_a place_n may_v suffice_v before_o our_o saviour_n christ_n command_v his_o apostle_n to_o go_v and_o teach_v all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o tell_v they_o lest_o they_o shall_v have_v doubt_v whether_o he_o have_v any_o authority_n to_o make_v they_o so_o large_a a_o commission_n that_o all_o power_n be_v give_v he_o in_o heaven_n 18._o and_o in_o earth_n he_o also_o be_v before_o as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n testify_v of_o he_o make_v heir_n of_o all_o thing_n 2._o and_o so_o have_v a_o true_a interest_n in_o they_o and_o after_o his_o resurrection_n 9_o have_v the_o full_a possession_n of_o they_o we_o see_v jesus_n say_v the_o apostle_n crown_v with_o glory_n and_o honour_n and_o again_o 22._o when_o god_n raise_v up_o jesus_n from_o the_o dead_a he_o set_v he_o at_o his_o right_a hand_n in_o heavenly_a place_n far_o above_o all_o principality_n and_o power_n and_o may_v and_o domination_n and_o every_o name_n that_o be_v name_v not_o in_o this_o world_n only_o but_o in_o that_o also_o which_o be_v to_o come_v and_o have_v make_v all_o thing_n subject_a under_o his_o foot_n 15._o and_o again_o the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n be_v our_o lord_n and_o his_o christ_n 14._o and_o again_o the_o lamb_n be_v lord_n of_o lord_n 16._o and_o king_n of_o king_n and_o to_o conclude_v he_o have_v upon_o his_o garment_n and_o upon_o his_o thigh_n a_o name_n write_v the_o king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n howbeit_o all_o that_o we_o have_v hitherto_o say_v notwithstanding_o though_o all_o the_o world_n do_v actual_o appertain_v to_o our_o saviour_n christ_n now_o in_o glory_n as_o he_o be_v man_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o say_a unition_n or_o hypostatical_a union_n yet_o do_v he_o not_o alter_v after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n the_o manner_n of_o temporal_a government_n which_o he_o have_v ordain_v throughout_o the_o world_n before_o his_o incarnation_n as_o he_o be_v god_n his_o humane_a nature_n be_v invest_v by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o divinity_n in_o manner_n before_o express_v with_o all_o his_o say_a glory_n and_o authority_n but_o do_v still_o continue_v the_o sole_a monarch_n over_o all_o distribute_v that_o his_o universal_a kingdom_n as_o former_o he_o have_v do_v into_o divers_a principality_n and_o kingdom_n and_o appoint_v temporal_a king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n as_o his_o substitute_n and_o vicegerent_n to_o rule_v they_o all_o by_o the_o rule_n and_o law_n of_o nature_n if_o they_o be_v ethnic_n or_o if_o christian_n than_o not_o only_o by_o those_o rule_n but_o also_o as_o well_o by_o the_o equity_n of_o the_o judicial_a law_n which_o he_o give_v to_o the_o jew_n as_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n more_o thorough_o open_v and_o deliver_v with_o all_o the_o part_n of_o it_o by_o himself_o and_o his_o apostle_n than_o in_o former_a time_n it_o have_v be_v of_o christian_a king_n we_o shall_v have_v fit_a place_n to_o speak_v hereafter_o now_o we_o will_v prosecute_v this_o point_n concern_v the_o regal_a authority_n of_o prince_n that_o be_v infidel_n and_o consider_v more_o particular_o whether_o they_o do_v not_o and_o so_o consequent_o do_v not_o still_o as_o lawful_o enjoy_v their_o kingdom_n and_o legal_a sovereignty_n under_o our_o saviour_n christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n as_o they_o do_v before_o either_o of_o they_o and_o likewise_o as_o they_o do_v before_o his_o incarnation_n according_a to_o that_o which_o we_o have_v deliver_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n and_o the_o especial_a reason_n that_o move_v we_o so_o to_o do_v be_v the_o audacious_a temerity_n of_o the_o beforenamed_n ignorant_a canonist_n and_o of_o their_o adherent_n the_o new_a sectary_n of_o the_o oratory_n congregation_n who_o with_o the_o like_a ignorance_n and_o folly_n that_o they_o tell_v we_o how_o all_o king_n lose_v their_o interest_n and_o authority_n over_o their_o kingdom_n by_o the_o birth_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v furthermore_o endeavour_v very_o wicked_o and_o sottish_o to_o pervert_v such_o especial_a place_n in_o the_o apostle_n write_n as_o be_v most_o aparent_o repugnant_a to_o their_o say_a fancy_n or_o rather_o frenzy_n to_o make_v their_o deal_n with_o one_o place_n apparent_a 13._o be_v sufficient_a for_o our_o purpose_n whereas_o st._n paul_n write_v to_o the_o roman_n will_v they_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n or_o teach_v they_o as_o a_o late_a absurd_a canonist_n abridge_v the_o place_n obediendum_fw-la esse_fw-la principibus_fw-la 38._o that_o prince_n be_v to_o be_v obey_v he_o speak_v not_o say_v he_o de_fw-fr ethnicis_fw-la as_o that_o place_n be_v corrupt_o allege_v sed_fw-la quatenus_fw-la de_fw-la illis_fw-la intellexit_fw-la that_o be_v in_o such_o a_o sense_n as_o he_o mean_v it_o and_o what_o the_o apostle_n mean_v he_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o tell_v we_o in_o this_o sort_n say_v 1._o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o roman_a empire_n which_o christ_n have_v approve_v when_o he_o bid_v the_o jew_n pay_v tribute_n to_o caesar_n 2._o the_o text_n do_v expound_v itself_o for_o he_o write_v to_o christian_n who_o he_o counsel_v to_o be_v obedient_a to_o prince_n lest_o they_o shall_v sin_v for_o prince_n be_v not_o to_o be_v fear_v for_o good_a work_n
yourselves_o unto_o all_o manner_n of_o ordinance_n of_o man_n for_o the_o lord_n sake_n whether_o it_o be_v unto_o the_o king_n as_o unto_o the_o superior_a or_o unto_o governor_n as_o unto_o they_o that_o be_v send_v of_o he_o for_o the_o punishment_n of_o evil_a doer_n and_o for_o the_o praise_n of_o they_o that_o do_v well_o for_o so_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o by_o well_o do_v you_o may_v put_v to_o silence_v the_o ignorance_n of_o foolish_a man_n as_o free_v and_o not_o as_o have_v the_o liberty_n for_o a_o cloak_n of_o maliciousness_n but_o as_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n honour_n all_o man_n love_v brotherly_a fellowship_n fear_v god_n honour_v the_o king_n and_o the_o same_o apostle_n etc._n describe_v the_o nature_n of_o false_a teacher_n which_o in_o time_n to_o come_v will_v thrust_v themselves_o into_o the_o church_n and_o by_o feign_a word_n make_v a_o merchandise_n of_o their_o follower_n among_o other_o impiety_n he_o note_v they_o with_o these_o that_o common_o they_o be_v despiser_n of_o government_n presumptuous_a person_n and_o such_o as_o stand_v in_o their_o own_o conceit_n man_n that_o fear_v not_o to_o speak_v evil_a of_o they_o that_o be_v in_o dignity_n but_o as_o brute_n beast_n lead_v with_o sensuality_n and_o make_v to_o be_v take_v and_o destroy_v speak_v evil_a of_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o know_v not_o and_o with_o st._n peter_n in_o this_o point_n the_o apostle_n st._n judas_n do_v concur_v 8._o where_o speak_v of_o those_o who_o in_o future_a time_n shall_v be_v maker_n of_o sect_n he_o term_v they_o mocker_n and_o man_n that_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o speak_v also_o of_o such_o like_a wicked_a person_n as_o be_v creep_v into_o the_o church_n in_o the_o apostle_n day_n he_o say_v they_o do_v despise_v government_n and_o speak_v evil_a of_o they_o that_o be_v in_o authority_n in_o all_o which_o place_n thus_o by_o we_o note_v concern_v as_o well_o the_o dignity_n and_o authority_n of_o sovereign_a king_n and_o prince_n as_o the_o fear_n duty_n and_o obedience_n which_o all_o their_o subject_n be_v true_o and_o sincere_o without_o murmur_v or_o repine_v to_o yield_v and_o perform_v unto_o they_o though_o they_o be_v then_o ethnic_n when_o we_o consider_v the_o manner_n of_o their_o delivery_n of_o that_o evangelical_n doctrine_n and_o their_o ground_n thereof_o as_o also_o how_o vehement_o they_o have_v write_v against_o all_o such_o person_n as_o either_o do_v then_o or_o shall_v afterward_o oppose_v themselves_o unto_o it_o by_o despise_v of_o civil_a magistrate_n speak_v evil_a of_o they_o or_o in_o any_o other_o sort_n whatsoever_o we_o be_v full_o persuade_v that_o they_o neither_o command_v teach_v or_o write_v any_o thing_n therein_o but_o what_o they_o know_v to_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o do_v according_o believe_v to_o be_v true_a for_o we_o hold_v it_o resolute_o that_o whatsoever_o the_o apostle_n do_v either_o write_v teach_v or_o command_v they_o write_v teach_v and_o command_v it_o as_o they_o be_v inspire_v and_o direct_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 16._o because_o when_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v to_o leave_v the_o world_n 21._o he_o promise_v to_o send_v unto_o they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 13._o the_o comforter_n and_o spirit_n of_o truth_n which_o shall_v lead_v they_o not_o into_o any_o byway_n or_o shift_a conceit_n but_o into_o the_o direct_a and_o plain_a path_n of_o all_o truth_n and_o do_v very_o short_o after_o perform_v that_o his_o promise_n when_o upon_o the_o day_n of_o pentecost_n they_o be_v all_o fill_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 4._o as_o st._n luke_n witness_v beside_o the_o apostle_n st._n paul_n himself_o do_v profess_v both_o in_o his_o own_o name_n and_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n his_o fellow_n that_o their_o master_n be_v the_o truth_n itself_o after_o he_o have_v so_o merciful_o and_o liberal_o perform_v his_o say_a promise_n unto_o they_o they_o do_v not_o deal_v with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o vintner_n regrater_n or_o merchant_n do_v with_o their_o mix_a wine_n and_o adulterate_a ware_n that_o be_v mingle_v it_o with_o any_o untruth_n or_o superstitious_a conceit_n or_o vent_v it_o out_o otherwise_o than_o the_o truth_n do_v therein_o warrant_v they_o or_o do_v apply_v it_o with_o fraud_n either_o to_o serve_v their_o own_o or_o any_o other_o man_n designment_n or_o deliver_v it_o with_o any_o such_o inward_a reservation_n and_o mental_a evasion_n as_o when_o they_o do_v most_o seem_v to_o their_o hearer_n to_o speak_v one_o thing_n direct_o they_o have_v such_o another_o meaning_n as_o when_o time_n shall_v serve_v they_o may_v make_v use_n of_o but_o whatsoever_o they_o say_v 17._o they_o speak_v it_o sincere_o sicut_fw-la ex_fw-la deo_fw-la as_o god_n do_v guide_v they_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n coram_fw-la deo_fw-la as_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n unto_o who_o one_o day_n they_o be_v to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o their_o say_a sincerity_n &_o in_o christo_n as_o their_o bless_a saviour_n himself_o have_v preach_v teach_v they_o and_o have_v command_v they_o can._n iu._n therefore_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v affirm_v under_o colour_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n either_o that_o the_o deity_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v not_o since_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n otherwise_o execute_v the_o majesty_n and_o glory_n thereof_o in_o his_o humanity_n than_o it_o do_v before_o his_o passion_n or_o that_o christ_n now_o in_o glory_n be_v not_o actual_o the_o heir_n of_o all_o thing_n as_o he_o be_v man_n so_o high_o exalt_v and_o both_o king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n or_o that_o he_o now_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n in_o glory_n and_o majesty_n as_o he_o be_v man_n have_v make_v a_o alteration_n in_o the_o manner_n of_o temporal_a government_n ordain_v by_o himself_o long_o before_o as_o he_o be_v god_n or_o that_o now_o all_o the_o kingdom_n in_o the_o world_n be_v but_o one_o kingdom_n in_o respect_n of_o himself_o he_o do_v not_o allow_v the_o distribute_v of_o that_o his_o one_o universal_a kingdom_n into_o divers_a principality_n and_o kingdom_n to_o be_v rule_v by_o so_o many_o king_n and_o absolute_a prince_n under_o he_o or_o that_o such_o king_n and_o sovereign_a governor_n as_o be_v ethnic_n be_v deprive_v by_o christ_n ascension_n into_o heaven_n and_o most_o glorious_a estate_n there_o from_o the_o true_a interest_n and_o lawful_a possession_n of_o the_o kingdom_n which_o before_o they_o enjoy_v or_o that_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v deceive_v in_o hold_v and_o maintain_v that_o all_o christian_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v bind_v to_o obey_v such_o king_n and_o prince_n as_o be_v then_o pagan_n or_o that_o the_o subject_n of_o all_o the_o temporal_a prince_n in_o the_o world_n be_v not_o as_o much_o bind_v in_o st._n paul_n time_n to_o be_v subject_a unto_o they_o as_o the_o roman_n be_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o empire_n not_o only_o for_o fear_n but_o even_o for_o conscience_n sake_n or_o that_o st._n paul_n commandment_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o apostleship_n and_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n of_o obedience_n to_o prince_n than_o ethnic_n be_v not_o of_o as_o great_a force_n to_o bind_v the_o conscience_n of_o all_o true_a christian_n as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v then_o summus_n pontifex_n or_o that_o any_o pope_n now_o have_v power_n to_o dispense_v with_o the_o say_a doctrine_n of_o st._n paul_n as_o the_o say_a canonist_n by_o we_o quote_v do_v seem_v to_o affirm_v where_o after_o he_o have_v say_v that_o the_o apostle_n st._n paul_n command_v all_o man_n to_o be_v obedient_a to_o superior_a power_n be_v not_o the_o high_a bishop_n he_o add_v these_o word_n papa_n major_a est_fw-la administratione_fw-la paulo_n &_o papa_n dispensat_fw-la contra_fw-la apostolum_n in_o his_o quae_fw-la non_fw-la concernunt_fw-la articulos_fw-la fidei_fw-la the_o pope_n be_v great_a in_o authority_n than_o paul_n the_o pope_n do_v dispense_v against_o the_o apostle_n in_o those_o thing_n that_o do_v not_o concern_v the_o article_n of_o faith_n or_o that_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v not_o as_o well_o restrain_v de_fw-la jure_fw-la by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n apostle_n as_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la from_o bear_v arm_n against_o such_o prince_n as_o be_v then_o ethnic_n and_o transfer_v of_o their_o kingdom_n from_o they_o unto_o any_o other_o or_o that_o st._n peter_n himself_o who_o our_o adversary_n will_v make_v the_o world_n believe_v be_v then_o the_o high_a bishop_n concur_v with_o the_o apostle_n st._n paul_n when_o he_o command_v the_o christian_n in_o those_o day_n to_o submit_v themselves_o unto_o the_o king_n as_o unto_o the_o superior_a they_o both_o of_o they_o be_v assure_v command_v therein_o as_o they_o
particular_a congregation_n minister_n and_o people_n in_o one_o city_n and_o in_o the_o town_n that_o do_v belong_v unto_o it_o but_o likewise_o over_o all_o the_o church_n in_o certain_a whole_a province_n and_o country_n 3_o as_o unto_o timothy_n all_o that_o be_v in_o asia_n the_o less_o 5._o and_o unto_o titus_n all_o that_o be_v plant_v throughout_o the_o island_n of_o crete_n and_o this_o sort_n of_o bishop_n who_o have_v so_o large_a jurisdiction_n over_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o in_o particular_a city_n be_v afterward_o call_v archbishop_n over_o who_o in_o like_a manner_n as_o likewise_o over_o all_o the_o rest_n bishop_n and_o minister_n and_o particular_a church_n the_o apostle_n themselves_o as_o the_o chief_a father_n and_o patriarch_n of_o all_o church_n have_v whilst_o they_o live_v the_o chief_a pre-eminence_n and_o oversight_n to_o direct_v and_o over-rule_v all_o as_o they_o know_v it_o to_o be_v most_o convenient_a and_o behooveful_a for_o the_o church_n communicate_v notwithstanding_o unto_o the_o say_a bishop_n and_o archbishop_n now_o their_o substitute_n but_o in_o time_n to_o be_v their_o successor_n as_o full_a authority_n in_o their_o absence_n with_o the_o limitation_n mention_v for_o the_o order_n of_o minister_n for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o key_n and_o for_o the_o further_a government_n of_o all_o the_o church_n commit_v to_o their_o charge_n by_o the_o good_a advice_n and_o counsel_n of_o the_o inferior_a sort_n of_o priest_n or_o minister_n under_o they_o when_o cause_n so_o require_v as_o if_o they_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o have_v be_v present_a or_o can_v have_v always_o live_v to_o have_v perform_v those_o duty_n in_o their_o own_o person_n their_o patriarchal_a authority_n for_o government_n not_o cease_v or_o die_v with_o they_o of_o this_o authority_n of_o ordination_n and_o government_n give_v to_o bishop_n by_o the_o holy_a apostle_n st._n paul_n he_o himself_o have_v leave_v to_o all_o posterity_n most_o clear_a and_o evident_a testimony_n where_o write_v to_o two_o of_o his_o say_a bishop_n timothy_n and_o titus_n he_o describe_v very_o particular_o the_o essential_a part_n of_o their_o duty_n and_o episcopal_a office_n in_o manner_n and_o sort_n follow_v for_o this_o cause_n i_o leave_v thou_o at_o crete_n 5._o that_o thou_o shall_v continue_v to_o redress_v the_o thing_n that_o remain_v and_o shall_v ordain_v priest_n or_o elder_n in_o every_o city_n 22._o as_o i_o appoint_v thou_o 10._o lay_v hand_n hasty_o on_o no_o man_n 19_o neither_o be_v partaker_n of_o other_o man_n sin_n let_v they_o first_o be_v prove_v then_o let_v they_o minister_v if_o they_o be_v find_v blameless_a against_o a_o presbyter_n or_o priest_n receive_v no_o accusation_n but_o under_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n they_o that_o sin_n rebuke_v open_o 7._o that_o the_o rest_n may_v fear_v i_o pray_v thou_o to_o abide_v at_o ephesus_n to_o command_v some_o that_o they_o teach_v no_o strange_a doctrine_n neither_o that_o they_o give_v heed_n to_o fable_n and_o genealogy_n which_o be_v endless_a and_o do_v breed_v question_n rather_o than_o godly_a edification_n which_o be_v by_o faith_n they_o will_v be_v doctor_n of_o the_o law_n and_o yet_o understand_v not_o what_o they_o speak_v 11._o neither_o whereof_o they_o affirm_v there_o be_v many_o disobedient_a and_o vain_a talker_n and_o deceiver_n of_o mind_n who_o mouth_n must_v be_v stop_v which_o subvert_v whole_a house_n teach_v thing_n which_o they_o ought_v not_o 9_o for_o filthy_a lucre_n sake_n stay_v foolish_a question_n and_o contention_n 10._o reject_v he_o that_o be_v a_o heretic_n after_o one_o or_o two_o warning_n 15._o these_o thing_n speak_v and_o exhort_v and_o rebuke_v with_o all_o authority_n see_v that_o no_o man_n despise_v thou_o what_o thing_n thou_o have_v hear_v of_o i_o the_o same_o deliver_v to_o faithful_a man_n which_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o teach_v other_o also_o put_v they_o in_o remembrance_n and_o protest_v before_o the_o lord_n 2._o that_o they_o strive_v not_o about_o word_n 14._o which_o be_v to_o no_o profit_n 16._o but_o to_o the_o pervert_n of_o the_o hearer_n 23._o stay_v profane_a and_o vain_a babble_n for_o they_o shall_v increase_v unto_o more_o ungodliness_n put_v away_o all_o foolish_a and_o unlearned_a question_n know_v that_o they_o engender_v strife_n i_o charge_v thou_o before_o god_n and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 21._o and_o the_o elect_a angel_n that_o thou_o observe_v these_o thing_n without_o prefer_v one_o to_o another_o and_o do_v nothing_o partial_o divers_a other_o particular_n may_v be_v hereunto_o add_v be_v it_o not_o that_o these_o be_v sufficient_a for_o our_o purpose_n to_o show_v as_o well_o what_o power_n be_v give_v to_o the_o say_v timothy_n and_o titus_n two_o apostolical_a bishop_n new_o design_v unto_o their_o episcopal_a function_n as_o also_o what_o authority_n the_o apostle_n himself_o have_v whilst_o he_o live_v both_o of_o prescribe_v rule_n unto_o they_o and_o also_o of_o exact_v the_o due_a observation_n of_o they_o he_o retain_v still_o in_o his_o own_o hand_n as_o full_a power_n and_o ample_a jurisdiction_n over_o they_o as_o they_o the_o say_v bishop_n have_v receive_v from_o he_o over_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o ministry_n within_o their_o several_a charge_n and_o thus_o we_o see_v how_o by_o degree_n the_o apostle_n do_v settle_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n among_o the_o gentile_n convert_v to_o christ_n most_o suitable_a and_o agree_v with_o the_o platform_n ordain_v by_o god_n himself_o among_o the_o jew_n minister_n be_v place_v in_o particular_a congregation_n as_o priest_n or_o levite_n be_v in_o their_o synagogue_n four_o and_o twenty_o priest_n term_v principes_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la have_v in_o that_o kingdom_n the_o charge_n over_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o among_o christian_n one_o sort_n of_o priest_n name_v bishop_n or_o arch-bishop_n as_o their_o jurisdiction_n be_v extend_v have_v the_o oversight_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o ministry_n or_o priesthood_n last_o as_o over_o all_o the_o priest_n of_o what_o sort_n soever_o and_o over_o the_o rest_n of_o all_o the_o jew_n aaron_n have_v the_o chief_a preeminence_n so_o have_v the_o apostle_n over_o all_o the_o bishop_n and_o priest_n and_o over_o the_o rest_n of_o all_o christian_n there_o be_v only_o this_o want_n to_o the_o full_a accomplishment_n of_o such_o a_o church-government_n as_o be_v settle_v among_o the_o jew_n that_o during_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o for_o a_o long_a season_n afterward_o it_o want_v christian_a magistrate_n to_o supply_v the_o room_n of_o moses_n king_n david_n king_n solomon_n and_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o worthy_a successor_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n in_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o particular_a success_n that_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v in_o plant_v of_o church_n throughout_o all_o africa_n and_o asia_n the_o great_a and_o a_o great_a part_n of_o europe_n but_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o they_o follow_v that_o same_o course_n in_o those_o part_n near_o or_o better_o know_v to_o we_o they_o proceed_v within_o their_o limit_n as_o st._n paul_n do_v within_o his_o and_o moreover_o we_o have_v sufficient_a warrant_n by_o the_o say_a practice_n of_o our_o apostle_n to_o judge_v that_o if_o all_o the_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n of_o the_o world_n will_v have_v receive_v the_o gospel_n whilst_o the_o apostle_n live_v they_o will_v have_v settle_v this_o platform_n of_o church-government_n under_o they_o in_o every_o such_o kingdom_n and_o sovereign_a principality_n that_o as_o the_o three_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o priesthood_n under_o the_o law_n be_v translate_v to_o the_o ministry_n or_o priesthood_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n so_o the_o external_a show_n or_o practice_n of_o they_o may_v have_v be_v in_o effect_n the_o same_o under_o christian_a prince_n that_o it_o be_v under_o the_o godly_a king_n and_o prince_n of_o judah_n christian_n of_o particular_a congregation_n to_o be_v direct_v by_o their_o immediate_a pastor_n pastor_n to_o be_v rule_v by_o their_o bishop_n bishop_n to_o be_v advise_v by_o their_o archbishop_n and_o the_o archbishop_n with_o all_o the_o rest_n both_o of_o the_o clergy_n and_o laity_n to_o be_v rule_v and_o govern_v by_o their_o godly_a king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n can._n vi_o and_o therefore_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v affirm_v under_o colour_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n either_o that_o the_o platform_n of_o church-government_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n may_v not_o lawful_o be_v deduce_v from_o that_o form_n of_o church-government_n which_o be_v in_o the_o old_a or_o that_o because_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o once_o for_o all_o and_o at_o one_o time_n but_o by_o degree_n erect_v such_o a_o like_a form_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n as_o be_v among_o the_o jew_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v suppose_v that_o they_o
that_o the_o priest_n of_o god_n mean_v every_o such_o bishop_n as_o he_o himself_o be_v in_o his_o own_o diocese_n be_v not_o obey_v nor_o one_o priest_n in_o the_o church_n acknowledge_v for_o the_o time_n to_o be_v judge_n in_o christ_n stead_n 8._o and_o again_o vnde_fw-la schismata_fw-la &_o haereses_fw-la abortae_fw-la sunt_fw-la &_o oriuntur_fw-la nisi_fw-la dum_fw-la episcopus_fw-la qui_fw-la unus_fw-la est_fw-la &_o ecclesiae_fw-la praeest_fw-la superbâ_fw-la quorundam_fw-la praesumptione_n contemnitur_fw-la whence_o have_v schism_n and_o heresy_n spring_v up_o and_o do_v spring_n but_o whilst_o the_o bishop_n which_o be_v one_o and_o rule_v the_o church_n be_v by_o the_o proud_a presumption_n of_o certain_a man_n despise_v a_o three_o father_n also_o though_o at_o some_o time_n he_o have_v a_o sharp_a tooth_n against_o bishop_n as_o they_o carry_v themselves_o in_o his_o time_n do_v confess_v nevertheless_o that_o when_o schism_n first_o begin_v bishop_n be_v ordain_v ut_fw-la schismatum_fw-la semina_fw-la tollerentur_fw-la and_o in_o another_o place_n in_o remedium_fw-la schismatis_fw-la ne_fw-la unusquisque_fw-la ad_fw-la se_fw-la trahens_fw-la christi_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la rumperet_fw-la also_o where_o the_o same_o father_n do_v write_v against_o the_o luciferian_o adv_fw-la and_o undertake_v the_o defence_n of_o bishop_n in_o a_o right_a point_n luciferianos_fw-la untrue_o by_o they_o impugned_a he_o speak_v of_o their_o authority_n within_o their_o several_a diocese_n after_o this_o sort_n ecclesiae_fw-la salus_fw-la in_o summi_fw-la sacerdotis_fw-la dignitate_fw-la pendet_fw-la cui_fw-la si_fw-la non_fw-la exhort_v quaedam_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la hominibus_fw-la eminens_fw-la detur_fw-la potestas_fw-la tot_fw-la in_o ecclesiis_fw-la efficientur_fw-la schismata_fw-la quot_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la that_o be_v the_o safety_n of_o the_o church_n do_v consist_v in_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o chief_a priest_n unto_o who_o if_o a_o extraordinary_a and_o eminent_a power_n from_o other_o man_n be_v not_o yield_v there_o will_v be_v as_o many_o schism_n in_o church_n as_o there_o be_v priest_n last_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o roman_a empire_n have_v wrought_v a_o great_a confusion_n in_o all_o the_o kingdom_n and_o country_n about_o it_o whilst_o in_o the_o greediness_n of_o honour_n in_o that_o state_n they_o have_v subdue_v their_o neighbour_n king_n and_o prince_n and_o turn_v their_o kingdom_n and_o principality_n into_o province_n and_o consulship_n and_o divers_a other_o such_o like_a form_n of_o regiment_n leave_v the_o same_o to_o the_o government_n of_o their_o own_o substitute_n to_o who_o they_o give_v sundry_a and_o different_a title_n which_o course_n hold_v by_o that_o state_n cause_v the_o apostle_n in_o their_o plant_n of_o church_n when_o they_o can_v not_o perform_v that_o which_o otherwise_o they_o will_v have_v do_v to_o frame_v their_o proceed_n as_o near_o unto_o it_o as_o they_o can_v in_o the_o chief_a city_n which_o have_v be_v head_n of_o so_o many_o kingdom_n and_o be_v still_o the_o seat_n then_o of_o the_o principal_a roman_a officer_n principal_a person_n be_v place_v who_o be_v bishop_n and_o more_o than_o bishop_n as_o st._n james_n at_o jerusalem_n although_o jerusalem_n notwithstanding_o it_o be_v honour_v with_o the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o the_o see_v of_o st._n james_n be_v not_o the_o metropolitan_a seat_n or_o archbishopric_n of_o that_o province_n but_o caesarea_n who_o right_a be_v save_v in_o the_o give_v that_o honour_n to_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o first_o nicene_n council_n st._n peter_n first_o in_o antioch_n and_o then_o in_o rome_n and_o st._n mark_v in_o alexandria_n who_o remain_v in_o those_o place_n as_o be_v then_o most_o behooveful_a for_o those_o church_n as_o so_o many_o principal_a archbishop_n patriarch_n to_o rule_v and_o direct_v all_o the_o bishop_n priest_n and_o christian_n in_o palestine_n syria_n italy_n and_o egypt_n and_o in_o other_o city_n also_o and_o country_n not_o so_o famous_a then_o as_o the_o say_v four_o there_o be_v appoint_v according_a to_o the_o largeness_n of_o their_o extent_n in_o some_o bishop_n to_o govern_v the_o minister_n which_o be_v in_o such_o city_n and_o in_o some_o other_o such_o as_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v who_o as_o we_o have_v show_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n have_v the_o oversight_n commit_v unto_o they_o as_o well_o of_o bishop_n as_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n within_o their_o limit_n all_o which_o particular_n so_o put_v in_o practice_n by_o the_o apostle_n be_v very_o well_o know_v to_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o ancient_a godly_a father_n that_o live_v the_o first_o 300._o year_n after_o christ_n and_o give_v they_o full_a assurance_n that_o they_o may_v lawful_o pursue_v in_o those_o day_n that_o form_n of_o church-government_n which_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o have_v erect_v the_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o time_n remain_v still_o one_o and_o the_o same_o that_o it_o be_v when_o the_o apostle_n live_v whereupon_o by_o their_o example_n they_o do_v not_o only_o continue_v the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n and_o archbishop_n in_o those_o place_n where_o the_o apostle_n have_v settle_v they_o supply_v other_o church_n either_o not_o thorough_o settle_v or_o not_o at_o all_o plant_v when_o the_o apostle_n die_v as_o before_o have_v be_v mention_v with_o the_o like_a church-governor_n but_o do_v likewise_o preserve_v and_o uphold_v in_o those_o part_n of_o the_o world_n where_o christianity_n do_v then_o chief_o flourish_v the_o succession_n of_o patriarchal_a archbishop_n in_o the_o abovementioned_a four_o most_o principal_a city_n jerusalem_n antioch_n rome_n and_o alexandria_n insomuch_o as_o it_o be_v common_o hold_v that_o this_o apostolical_a order_n be_v thus_o distribute_v and_o settle_v by_o the_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n long_o before_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o that_o then_o in_o that_o holy_a assembly_n it_o be_v only_o but_o so_o acknowledge_v and_o continue_v idque_fw-la ad_fw-la disciplinae_fw-la conservationem_fw-la calvin_n as_o a_o very_a worthy_a man_n have_v observe_v the_o consideration_n of_o all_o which_o particular_a point_n concern_v the_o place_n of_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n in_o the_o territory_n of_o the_o roman_n according_a to_o the_o dignity_n and_o chief_a honour_n of_o the_o city_n and_o country_n where_o they_o be_v place_v do_v very_o thorough_o persuade_v we_o that_o as_o we_o observe_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n if_o all_o the_o say_a kingdom_n and_o sovereign_a principality_n then_o in_o subjection_n to_o the_o roman_a empire_n have_v be_v free_v of_o that_o servitude_n and_o govern_v by_o their_o own_o king_n and_o prince_n as_o they_o have_v be_v before_o the_o apostle_n though_o the_o say_v king_n and_o prince_n have_v refuse_v to_o receive_v the_o gospel_n will_v notwithstanding_o as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lay_v have_v settle_v in_o every_o one_o of_o they_o for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n there_o the_o like_a form_n that_o god_n himself_o do_v erect_v among_o the_o jew_n and_o that_o they_o themselves_o do_v establish_v in_o their_o time_n in_o the_o like_o heathenish_a place_n as_o be_v aforesaid_a that_o be_v in_o every_o such_o kingdom_n minister_n in_o particular_a church_n or_o congregation_n bishop_n over_o minister_n and_o archbishop_n to_o oversee_v and_o direct_v they_o all_o and_o assure_o if_o when_o christian_n king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n do_v free_v themselves_o from_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o empire_n they_o have_v either_o know_v or_o regard_v the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n within_o their_o kingdom_n and_o principality_n they_o will_v have_v be_v as_o careful_a to_o have_v deliver_v their_o church_n from_o the_o bondage_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o they_o be_v their_o kingdom_n from_o subjection_n to_o the_o empire_n for_o all_o that_o be_v common_o allege_v to_o the_o contrary_a be_v but_o the_o fume_n of_o presumptuous_a brain_n the_o chief_a archbishop_n either_o in_o france_n or_o spain_n have_v as_o full_a power_n and_o authority_n under_o their_o sovereign_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v in_o time_n pass_v over_o italy_n under_o their_o emperor_n and_o by_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n they_o ought_v to_o depend_v no_o more_o upon_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n than_o they_o do_v now_o one_o upon_o the_o other_o or_o than_o the_o archbishop_n of_o england_n under_o their_o most_o worthy_a sovereign_n do_v depend_v upon_o any_o of_o they_o as_o it_o will_v hereafter_o more_o plain_o we_o hope_v appear_v by_o that_o which_o we_o have_v to_o say_v of_o that_o infinite_a authority_n which_o the_o pope_n do_v vain_o challenge_v to_o himself_o can._n vii_o and_o therefore_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v affirm_v under_o colour_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n either_o that_o the_o subscription_n or_o direction_n of_o the_o second_o epistle_n of_o st._n paul_n to_o
timothy_n of_o of_o his_o epistle_n to_o titus_n though_o they_o be_v find_v in_o the_o ancient_a copy_n of_o the_o greek_a testament_n be_v of_o no_o credit_n or_o authority_n or_o that_o such_o a_o impeachment_n and_o discredit_v lay_v upon_o they_o be_v not_o very_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o book_n and_o write_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o great_a presumption_n for_o man_n in_o these_o day_n to_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o know_v better_o whether_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v bishop_n than_o the_o church_n and_o godly_a father_n do_v which_o be_v plant_v and_o live_v either_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n or_o present_o after_o they_o except_o they_o have_v some_o especial_a revelation_n from_o god_n or_o that_o whilst_o man_n do_v labour_n to_o bring_v into_o discredit_v the_o ancient_a father_n and_o primitive_a church_n they_o do_v not_o derogate_v from_o themselves_o such_o credit_n as_o they_o hunt_v after_o and_o as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v bring_v many_o part_n of_o religion_n into_o a_o wonderful_a uncertainty_n or_o that_o it_o be_v probable_a or_o be_v possible_a for_o timothy_n to_o have_v observe_v those_o rule_n that_o st._n paul_n give_v he_o unto_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n except_o as_o the_o father_n expound_v some_o of_o they_o he_o mean_v to_o have_v they_o first_o observe_v by_o himself_o and_o other_o bishop_n in_o that_o age_n and_o that_o afterward_o they_o shall_v so_o likewise_o be_v observe_v by_o all_o bishop_n for_o ever_o or_o that_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o ecclesiastical_a history_n when_o they_o record_v it_o to_o all_o posterity_n that_o these_o man_n and_o those_o man_n be_v make_v by_o the_o apostle_n bishop_n of_o such_o and_o such_o place_n be_v not_o to_o be_v hold_v to_o be_v of_o more_o credit_n than_o any_o other_o historiographer_n or_o writer_n or_o that_o when_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v collect_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o continuance_n for_o ever_o of_o that_o form_n of_o church-government_n which_o be_v then_o in_o use_n they_o be_v not_o so_o thorough_o illuminate_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o divers_a man_n of_o late_o have_v be_v or_o that_o it_o be_v a_o idle_a course_n hold_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o ancient_a father_n to_o keep_v the_o catalogue_n of_o their_o bishop_n or_o to_o ground_n argument_n in_o some_o case_n upon_o their_o succession_n in_o that_o they_o be_v able_a to_o deduce_v their_o beginning_n either_o from_o the_o apostle_n or_o from_o some_o apostolical_a person_n or_o that_o the_o form_n of_o government_n use_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n for_o the_o plant_n and_o order_v of_o church_n be_v not_o in_o many_o respect_n as_o necessary_a to_o be_v continue_v in_o the_o church_n afterward_o especial_o consider_v that_o many_o church_n be_v not_o leave_v full_o order_v nor_o in_o some_o place_n be_v at_o all_o plant_v when_o the_o apostle_n die_v or_o that_o true_a and_o perfect_a order_n ground_v upon_o the_o very_a law_n of_o nature_n and_o reason_n and_o establish_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n be_v not_o fit_a for_o the_o church_n of_o god_n afterward_o to_o embrace_v and_o observe_v or_o that_o any_o church_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n till_o of_o late_a year_n when_o it_o receive_v the_o gospel_n have_v not_o likewise_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n for_o the_o government_n of_o it_o or_o that_o divers_a of_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v not_o hold_v and_o that_o very_o true_o for_o aught_o that_o appear_v to_o the_o contrary_a that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n in_o establish_v the_o form_n of_o church-government_n among_o the_o gentile_n have_v a_o especial_a respect_n to_o that_o form_n which_o god_n have_v settle_v among_o the_o jew_n and_o do_v no_o way_n purpose_n to_o abrogate_v or_o abolish_v it_o or_o that_o any_o since_o the_o apostle_n time_n till_o of_o late_a day_n be_v ever_o hold_v to_o be_v a_o lawful_a minister_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n who_o be_v not_o ordain_v priest_n or_o minister_n by_o the_o imposition_n of_o the_o hand_n of_o some_o bishop_n or_o that_o it_o be_v with_o any_o probability_n to_o be_v imagine_v that_o all_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o ancient_a father_n from_o the_o beginning_n will_v ever_o have_v hold_v it_o for_o a_o apostolical_a rule_n that_o none_o but_o bishop_n have_v any_o authority_n to_o make_v priest_n have_v they_o not_o think_v and_o judge_v that_o the_o same_o authority_n have_v be_v derive_v unto_o they_o the_o say_v bishop_n from_o the_o same_o apostolical_a ordination_n that_o be_v commit_v unto_o timothy_n and_o titus_n their_o predecessor_n or_o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v deceive_v when_o they_o judge_v the_o authority_n of_o bishop_n necessary_a at_o all_o time_n for_o the_o suppress_n of_o schism_n and_o that_o without_o bishop_n there_o will_v be_v in_o the_o church_n as_o many_o sect_n as_o minister_n or_o that_o when_o man_n find_v themselves_o in_o regard_n of_o their_o disobedience_n to_o their_o bishop_n so_o full_o and_o notable_o describe_v and_o censure_v by_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n for_o schismatic_n and_o contentious_a person_n they_o have_v not_o just_a cause_n to_o fear_v their_o own_o estate_n if_o they_o continue_v in_o such_o their_o wilfulness_n and_o obstinacy_n or_o that_o the_o church-government_n by_o we_o above_o treat_v of_o be_v true_o to_o be_v say_v to_o savour_n of_o judaisme_n more_o than_o the_o observation_n by_o godly_a king_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o equity_n of_o the_o judicial_a law_n give_v to_o the_o jew_n may_v true_o be_v say_v to_o savour_v thereof_o or_o that_o it_o do_v proceed_v from_o any_o other_o than_o the_o wicked_a spirit_n for_o any_o sort_n of_o man_n what_o godly_a show_n soever_o they_o can_v pretend_v to_o seek_v to_o discredit_v as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v that_o form_n of_o church-government_n which_o be_v establish_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o leave_v by_o they_o to_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n under_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n such_o as_o be_v timothy_n and_o titus_n and_o some_o other_o then_o call_v to_o those_o office_n by_o the_o say_a apostle_n and_o ever_o since_o hold_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n to_o be_v apostolical_a function_n or_o to_o term_v the_o same_o or_o any_o part_n of_o it_o to_o be_v antichristian_a he_o do_v great_o err_v cap._n ix_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o chapter_n follow_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n upon_o his_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n do_v not_o commit_v the_o temporal_a government_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n unto_o st._n peter_n that_o the_o apostle_n and_o whole_a ministry_n do_v succeed_v christ_n not_o as_o he_o be_v a_o person_n immortal_a and_o glorious_a after_o his_o resurrection_n but_o as_o he_o be_v a_o mortal_a man_n here_o upon_o the_o earth_n before_o his_o passion_n that_o christ_n leave_v neither_o to_o st._n peter_n nor_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n nor_o to_o any_o other_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n any_o temporal_a possession_n all_o that_o since_o any_o of_o they_o have_v get_v be_v bestow_v upon_o they_o by_o emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n and_o other_o their_o good_a benefactor_n and_o that_o the_o imagination_n of_o st._n peter_n temporal_a sovereignty_n be_v very_o idle_a the_o same_o be_v never_o know_v unto_o himself_o for_o aught_o that_o appear_v and_o argue_v great_a ignorance_n of_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o the_o spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o erect_n whereof_o the_o spiritual_a work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v and_o be_v only_o necessary_a it_o have_v be_v show_v by_o we_o before_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n become_v actual_o in_o the_o state_n of_o the_o heir_n of_o all_o thing_n governor_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o king_n of_o king_n even_o as_o he_o be_v man_n his_o divine_a nature_n work_v more_o glorious_o in_o his_o humanity_n than_o former_o it_o have_v do_v howbeit_o although_o we_o also_o make_v it_o plain_a that_o notwithstanding_o the_o say_a glory_n power_n rule_n dominion_n and_o majesty_n wherewith_o christ_n be_v real_o possess_v sit_v in_o heaven_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n he_o make_v no_o alteration_n in_o the_o form_n and_o manner_n of_o temporal_a government_n but_o leave_v the_o whole_a world_n to_o be_v rule_v by_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n under_o he_o as_o it_o have_v be_v before_o himself_o retain_v still_o in_o his_o own_o hand_n the_o sceptre_n and_o chief_a ensign_n of_o royal_a and_o high_a majesty_n to_o direct_v and_o
that_o in_o all_o likelihood_n he_o have_v receive_v any_o great_a commendation_n for_o his_o plain_a deal_n in_o answer_n to_o another_o objection_n which_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o pope_n nicholas_n who_o in_o a_o epistle_n of_o he_o to_o michael_n the_o emperor_n of_o constantinople_n do_v write_v thus_o christus_fw-la b._n petro_n aquavitae_fw-la aeternae_fw-la clavigero_fw-la terreni_fw-la simul_fw-la &_o coelestibus_fw-la imperii_fw-la jura_n commisti_fw-la christ_n do_v commit_v to_o st._n peter_n the_o key_n bearer_n of_o everlasting_a lise_n the_o right_a and_o interest_n both_o of_o the_o earthly_a and_o of_o the_o heavenly_a empire_n to_o which_o say_v of_o pope_n nicholas_n the_o cardinal_n make_v two_o answer_n testimonium_fw-la ad_fw-la testimonium_fw-la nicolai_n dico_fw-la imprimis_fw-la illud_fw-la citari_fw-la à_fw-la gratiano_n d._n 22._o can._n omnes_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la inveniri_fw-la inter_fw-la epistolas_fw-la nicolai_n papae_fw-la to_o the_o testimony_n of_o pope_n nicholas_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o the_o say_v be_v cite_v by_o gratian_n but_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v among_o the_o epistle_n of_o pope_n nicholas_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v that_o testimony_n be_v forge_v and_o the_o effect_n of_o his_o second_o answer_n be_v that_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v urge_v that_o testimony_n of_o pope_n nicholas_n in_o the_o sense_n object_v they_o make_v he_o direct_o repugnant_a to_o himself_o in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o say_a epistle_n and_o concern_v the_o other_o argument_n by_o our_o say_a canonist_n allege_v of_o the_o death_n of_o ananias_n and_o sapphira_n the_o ancient_a father_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n will_v certain_o have_v scorn_v it_o if_o ever_o they_o have_v hear_v of_o it_o peter_n know_v by_o the_o instinct_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o satan_n have_v possess_v both_o their_o heart_n and_o how_o they_o lie_v not_o to_o man_n but_o to_o god_n do_v only_o pronounce_v that_o sentence_n of_o death_n upon_o they_o which_o the_o holy_a spirit_n do_v suggest_v unto_o he_o wherein_o although_o there_o may_v appear_v what_o force_n the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v when_o it_o be_v brandish_v by_o st._n peter_n through_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n there_o be_v assure_o no_o use_n of_o any_o material_a and_o civil_a sword_n for_o if_o there_o have_v another_o manner_n of_o form_n of_o outward_a justice_n will_v first_o have_v be_v hold_v before_o they_o have_v be_v execute_v and_o to_o conclude_v this_o point_n we_o do_v free_o profess_v that_o the_o nature_n of_o christ_n his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n be_v thorough_o weigh_v we_o can_v find_v to_o what_o purpose_n either_o st._n peter_n or_o any_o of_o his_o successor_n shall_v have_v be_v make_v temporal_a monarch_n over_o all_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n in_o the_o world_n because_o all_o their_o temporal_a force_n and_o sword_n join_v together_o have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o have_v vanquish_v one_o wicked_a spirit_n of_o the_o air_n or_o have_v open_v the_o door_n of_o any_o one_o man_n heart_n for_o christ_n or_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o have_v enter_v and_o have_v make_v their_o habitation_n in_o it_o can._n viii_o if_o therefore_o any_o man_n shall_v affirm_v under_o colour_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n either_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v otherwise_o commit_v the_o world_n to_o be_v govern_v under_o he_o by_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n but_o so_o as_o he_o himself_o with_o his_o regal_a sceptre_n do_v rule_n and_o govern_v they_o all_o according_a to_o his_o divine_a pleasure_n or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o sound_a argument_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o be_v temporal_a king_n have_v whole_o pervert_v the_o institution_n of_o christ_n in_o that_o behalf_n in_o that_o they_o be_v drive_v to_o justify_v their_o fact_n therein_o by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o maccabee_n and_o those_o time_n of_o so_o great_a confusion_n or_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n whilst_o he_o be_v here_o upon_o the_o earth_n do_v not_o full_o content_v himself_o to_o be_v only_o a_o spiritual_a king_n to_o rule_v in_o man_n heart_n or_o that_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v erect_v such_o a_o spiritual_a kingdom_n he_o do_v not_o conquer_v the_o devil_n sin_n death_n and_o hell_n and_o thereby_o take_v possession_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o true_a believer_n or_o that_o before_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v begin_v to_o reign_v in_o man_n heart_n he_o do_v not_o first_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o word_n beget_v a_o lively_a faith_n in_o it_o or_o that_o whilst_o he_o live_v here_o in_o the_o world_n he_o do_v not_o satisfy_v himself_o for_o our_o sake_n with_o a_o very_a mean_a and_o poor_a estate_n be_v in_o himself_o most_o rich_a because_o he_o be_v god_n and_o in_o his_o humanity_n the_o heir_n of_o all_o thing_n or_o that_o he_o do_v not_o institute_n and_o ordain_v a_o priesthood_n or_o ministry_n to_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o the_o continuance_n and_o augment_v of_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n or_o that_o the_o child_n of_o god_n notwithstanding_o that_o they_o be_v redeem_v through_o faith_n by_o christ_n and_o deliver_v out_o of_o the_o jaw_n of_o hell_n and_o satan_n be_v not_o still_o to_o take_v heed_n and_o beware_v of_o he_o and_o to_o arm_v themselves_o according_o against_o his_o force_n or_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n when_o he_o tell_v his_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n that_o the_o servant_n be_v not_o above_o his_o lord_n but_o that_o whosoever_o will_v be_v a_o perfect_a disciple_n shall_v be_v as_o his_o master_n do_v not_o mean_a that_o his_o apostle_n and_o after_o they_o their_o successor_n archbishop_n bishop_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o ministry_n shall_v hold_v their_o service_n and_o office_n under_o he_o to_o do_v as_o he_o do_v when_o he_o be_v a_o mortal_a man_n of_o poor_a estate_n and_o subject_a to_o many_o bad_a usage_n and_o injury_n or_o that_o because_o our_o saviour_n christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n when_o he_o be_v become_v a_o man_n immortal_a and_o glorious_a do_v then_o enlarge_v the_o commission_n of_o his_o apostle_n and_o ordain_v by_o they_o a_o succession_n of_o the_o ministry_n for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n he_o do_v thereby_o make_v they_o any_o more_o partaker_n of_o his_o regal_a authority_n whereof_o his_o humane_a nature_n be_v then_o actual_o possess_v for_o the_o state_n and_o exercise_n thereof_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o free_a and_o unrestrained_a operation_n of_o his_o deity_n than_o he_o make_v their_o natural_a and_o corruptible_a body_n incorrupt_a and_o spiritual_a body_n or_o endow_v they_o in_o this_o life_n with_o any_o of_o that_o glory_n power_n and_o heavenly_a estate_n which_o they_o be_v to_o enjoy_v after_o their_o death_n and_o bless_a resurrection_n or_o that_o the_o apostle_n after_o christ_n death_n not_o exempt_n st._n peter_n do_v not_o find_v their_o estate_n in_o this_o world_n very_o suitable_a to_o their_o master_n whilst_o he_o live_v with_o they_o all_o thing_n happen_v unto_o they_o as_o he_o have_v foretell_v they_o or_o that_o either_o st._n peter_n or_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n or_o of_o their_o successor_n either_o then_o or_o since_o that_o time_n can_v challenge_v so_o much_o as_o this_o or_o that_o one_o temporal_a farm_n by_o virtue_n of_o their_o ecclesiastical_a function_n more_o than_o their_o master_n have_v or_o that_o either_o they_o be_v themselves_o possess_v with_o as_o their_o own_o before_o they_o be_v call_v to_o that_o ministration_n or_o than_o be_v afterward_o give_v unto_o they_o by_o godly_a emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n and_o other_o devout_a and_o religious_a person_n or_o that_o if_o st._n peter_n have_v know_v himself_o to_o have_v be_v under_o christ_n the_o sole_a temporal_a monarch_n of_o the_o world_n it_o have_v not_o be_v his_o duty_n to_o have_v make_v the_o same_o know_v at_o least_o to_o the_o apostle_n and_o such_o as_o be_v convert_v to_o christ_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v have_v honour_v he_o according_o as_o his_o dutiful_a and_o loyal_a subject_n or_o that_o it_o have_v not_o in_o all_o probability_n if_o st._n peter_n mean_v to_o show_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o temporal_a king_n by_o the_o death_n of_o ananias_n and_o sapphira_n be_v much_o more_o expedient_a for_o the_o success_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o those_o day_n if_o he_o have_v use_v such_o his_o regal_a authority_n against_o those_o civil_a magistrate_n which_o be_v enemy_n to_o christ_n and_o to_o all_o that_o preach_v in_o his_o name_n or_o that_o it_o may_v be_v right_o imagine_v with_o our_o dutiful_a regard_n of_o st._n peter_n sincerity_n that_o ever_o he_o will_v have_v be_v so_o earnest_a with_o the_o
disperse_a jew_n to_o have_v submit_v themselves_o for_o the_o lord_n sake_n unto_o king_n and_o other_o governor_n to_o have_v obey_v they_o and_o honour_v they_o if_o he_o have_v know_v they_o to_o have_v have_v temporal_a authority_n because_o they_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v themselves_o to_o be_v his_o vassal_n or_o that_o it_o do_v not_o proceed_v from_o the_o great_a wisdom_n of_o god_n to_o abridge_v in_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n even_o in_o st._n peter_n himself_n that_o great_a power_n and_o authority_n which_o christ_n have_v as_o appear_v by_o his_o word_n when_o he_o say_v that_o if_o he_o have_v think_v it_o fit_a he_o can_v have_v twelve_o legion_n of_o angel_n at_o his_o commandment_n to_o have_v defend_v he_o from_o all_o his_o enemy_n the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n with_o all_o their_o partaker_n in_o that_o perhaps_o the_o apostle_n even_o st._n peter_n himself_o may_v have_v abuse_v it_o or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o more_o than_o probable_a that_o howsoever_o st._n peter_n will_v have_v use_v the_o say_a power_n and_o authority_n if_o he_o have_v have_v it_o if_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v receive_v it_o from_o he_o they_o will_v certain_o have_v make_v great_a havoc_n and_o confusion_n in_o the_o world_n with_o it_o or_o that_o if_o all_o the_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n in_o the_o world_n have_v be_v subject_a to_o st._n peter_n and_o be_v thereupon_o in_o the_o like_a subjection_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n they_o both_o st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n may_v not_o have_v have_v ready_a at_o their_o commandment_n if_o king_n and_o prince_n have_v do_v their_o duty_n more_o than_o twelve_o legion_n to_o have_v confound_v all_o man_n that_o shall_v have_v disobey_v they_o or_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o as_o absurd_v a_o imagination_n and_o conceit_n for_o any_o man_n to_o think_v that_o christ_n do_v give_v so_o great_a temporal_a authority_n either_o to_o st._n peter_n or_o any_o of_o his_o successor_n over_o temporal_a king_n and_o prince_n that_o they_o may_v have_v so_o great_a army_n when_o they_o list_v at_o their_o direction_n as_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v hold_v that_o because_o they_o be_v christ_n vicar_n they_o may_v have_v twelve_o legion_n from_o heaven_n to_o do_v they_o service_n if_o perhaps_o temporal_a king_n and_o prince_n shall_v be_v negligent_a or_o refuse_v to_o be_v at_o such_o charge_n at_o their_o commandment_n or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o kind_n of_o madness_n the_o true_a nature_n of_o christ_n spiritual_a kingdom_n and_o church_n here_o upon_o earth_n consider_v for_o any_o man_n to_o conceive_v and_o thereupon_o maintain_v that_o any_o such_o omnipotency_n of_o temporal_a power_n in_o st._n peter_n ever_o be_v or_o ever_o shall_v be_v available_a to_o vanquish_v the_o devil_n or_o remove_v he_o out_o of_o his_o palace_n or_o to_o spoil_v he_o of_o all_o his_o principality_n or_o to_o beget_v faith_n in_o the_o child_n of_o god_n or_o to_o erect_v in_o their_o heart_n a_o tabernacle_n for_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v only_o the_o peculiar_a and_o proper_a action_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n as_o he_o be_v our_o spiritual_a king_n and_o of_o st._n peter_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n with_o all_o their_o successor_n in_o their_o degree_n and_o as_o they_o be_v his_o spiritual_a minister_n he_o do_v great_o err_v cap._n x._o the_o sum_n of_o the_o chapter_n follow_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o temporal_a authority_n indirect_o over_o king_n and_o prince_n throughout_o the_o christian_a world_n to_o depose_v they_o from_o their_o kingdom_n for_o any_o cause_n whatsoever_o because_o we_o have_v be_v bold_a to_o use_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o cardinalize_v jesuit_n against_o the_o ridiculous_a canonist_n and_o their_o companion_n the_o new_a sectary_n of_o the_o oratory-congregation_n concern_v the_o pope_n temporal_a authority_n over_o all_o king_n and_o prince_n in_o the_o world_n direct_o we_o may_v not_o do_v he_o so_o much_o injury_n as_o once_o to_o pretend_v that_o he_o favour_v either_o we_o or_o any_o point_n of_o truth_n for_o our_o sake_n that_o we_o defend_v it_o may_v rather_o be_v ascribe_v unto_o he_o for_o a_o singular_a virtue_n his_o bringing_z up_o and_o course_n of_o life_n consider_v if_o he_o study_v not_o to_o impugn_v it_o with_o all_o the_o strength_n that_o he_o have_v either_o of_o his_o wit_n or_o learning_n nevertheless_o albeit_o he_o have_v travel_v exceed_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr romano_n pontifice_fw-la to_o advance_v the_o papacy_n to_o his_o uttermost_a ability_n and_o have_v no_o purpose_n therein_o we_o be_v well_o assure_v to_o give_v we_o any_o advantage_n who_o do_v oppose_v ourselves_o against_o the_o whole_a drift_n of_o those_o his_o book_n yet_o he_o have_v so_o muster_v and_o marshal_v his_o matter_n and_o force_n together_o as_o whilst_o he_o endeavour_v to_o fortify_v the_o pope_n authority_n and_o to_o encounter_v the_o assault_n that_o have_v be_v make_v against_o it_o he_o have_v do_v more_o for_o we_o against_o his_o will_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o his_o master_n who_o he_o labour_v to_o uphold_v than_o we_o can_v ever_o have_v expect_v at_o his_o hand_n insomuch_o as_o we_o be_v very_o persuade_v the_o time_n will_v come_v before_o it_o be_v long_o that_o his_o work_n will_v be_v thrust_v into_o the_o catalogue_n librorum_fw-la prohibitorum_fw-la because_o deal_v with_o our_o argument_n as_o he_o do_v in_o the_o say_a book_n de_fw-la romano_n pontifice_fw-la and_o think_v that_o he_o will_v no_o further_o yield_v to_o the_o truth_n by_o way_n of_o objection_n than_o as_o he_o shall_v be_v able_a sufficient_o to_o refel_v it_o it_o have_v often_o fall_v out_o with_o he_o as_o it_o will_v ever_o do_v with_o all_o impostor_n that_o the_o very_a meaning_n of_o the_o truth_n according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o have_v notwithstanding_o all_o his_o cunning_n very_o much_o prevail_v against_o he_o to_o the_o everlasting_a glory_n of_o she_o own_o name_n and_o forcible_a strength_n to_o discover_v error_n like_v to_o the_o sun_n be_v to_o expel_v darkness_n we_o will_v not_o here_o otherwise_o make_v proof_n hereof_o than_o as_o by_o the_o matter_n we_o have_v in_o hand_n and_o be_v purpose_v to_o prosecute_v we_o be_v after_o a_o sort_n urge_v and_o compel_v for_o albeit_o hitherto_o he_o have_v seem_v to_o have_v join_v with_o we_o as_o he_o have_v indeed_o more_o than_o now_o we_o be_v persuade_v he_o do_v well_o vouchsafe_v yet_o foresee_v what_o tempest_n he_o be_v otherwise_o like_a to_o have_v endure_v in_o affirm_v so_o peremptory_o as_o he_o do_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o temporal_a authority_n at_o all_o as_o he_o be_v either_o christ_n or_o st_n peter_n vicar_n he_o mince_v his_o matter_n in_o the_o title_n of_o his_o chapter_n to_o that_o purpose_n with_o the_o word_n directè_fw-la whereof_o in_o his_o reason_n he_o never_o make_v mention_n and_o then_o fall_v upon_o this_o issue_n that_o indirectè_fw-la the_o pope_n have_v authority_n over_o all_o emperor_n king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n to_o hurry_v they_o hither_o and_o thither_o to_o depose_v and_o remove_v they_o from_o their_o regal_a estate_n and_o dignity_n to_o dispose_v of_o their_o kingdom_n according_a to_o his_o own_o pleasure_n to_o release_v their_o subject_n of_o their_o oath_n and_o obedience_n and_o to_o thrust_v they_o into_o all_o rebellion_n treason_n fury_n and_o what_o not_o against_o they_o in_o the_o which_o his_o course_n this_o be_v our_o comfort_n that_o by_o direct_a deal_n the_o cardinal_n do_v find_v no_o way_n or_o mean_n how_o to_o withstand_v the_o truth_n but_o be_v drive_v by_o indirect_a shift_n and_o by-path_n to_o oppose_v his_o labour_n we_o fear_v reclamante_fw-la conscientiâ_fw-la how_o to_o save_v his_o own_o worldly_a credit_n he_o may_v cast_v a_o mist_n upon_o the_o truth_n if_o not_o to_o depress_v it_o which_o be_v not_o in_o his_o power_n yet_o at_o the_o least_o to_o obscure_v it_o to_o darken_v it_o and_o perplex_v it_o some_o of_o the_o principal_a reason_n which_o he_o have_v use_v to_o this_o purpose_n mention_v be_v of_o this_o kind_a and_o consequence_n 6._o bona_fw-la corporis_fw-la the_o good_a thing_n that_o do_v appertain_v to_o the_o body_n as_o health_n especial_o be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o bona_fw-la fortunae_fw-la as_o the_o philosopher_n call_v they_o that_o be_v riches_n and_o all_o other_o worldly_a dignity_n and_o preferment_n whatsoever_o therefore_o the_o call_n of_o physician_n the_o end_n whereof_o be_v the_o health_n of_o man_n body_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o other_o temporal_a calling_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n or_o thus_o natural_a parent_n be_v they_o emperor_n king_n or_o sovereign_a prince_n do_v give_v unto_o their_o child_n their_o
fault_n what_o the_o cardinal_n friend_n will_v say_v of_o his_o pervert_n the_o apostle_n meaning_n with_o so_o desperate_a a_o exposition_n we_o be_v uncertain_a but_o of_o this_o we_o be_v sure_a that_o the_o estate_n of_o that_o church_n must_v needs_o be_v very_o miserable_a that_o can_v be_v uphold_v without_o so_o apparent_a injury_n do_v to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o observation_n we_o think_v fit_a to_o make_v in_o this_o place_n because_o he_o once_o have_v past_o the_o bound_n of_o all_o modesty_n or_o rather_o piety_n be_v grow_v to_o that_o presumption_n and_o hardness_n of_o heart_n against_o the_o truth_n as_o that_o he_o dare_v to_o ground_v another_o of_o his_o reason_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v authority_n indirect_o to_o depose_v king_n and_o prince_n upon_o these_o word_n speak_v to_o st._n peter_n pasce_fw-la oves_fw-la meas_fw-la feed_v my_o sheep_n touch_v which_o word_n because_o we_o have_v a_o fit_a place_n to_o entreat_v we_o will_v here_o be_v silent_a and_o address_v ourselves_o to_o his_o four_o reason_n as_o idle_a and_o as_o false_a as_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n these_o be_v his_o word_n when_o king_n and_o prince_n come_v to_o the_o church_n that_o they_o may_v be_v make_v christian_n they_o be_v receive_v cum_fw-la pacto_fw-la expresso_fw-la vel_fw-la tacito_fw-la with_o a_o condition_n express_v or_o imply_v without_o any_o mention_n make_v of_o it_o that_o they_o do_v submit_v their_o sceptre_n unto_o christ_n and_o do_v promise_n that_o they_o will_v keep_v and_o defend_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n etiam_fw-la sub_fw-la poenâ_fw-la regni_fw-la perdendi_fw-la even_o under_o pain_n of_o lose_v their_o kingdom_n therefore_o when_o they_o become_v heretic_n or_o do_v hinder_v religion_n they_o may_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o church_n and_o also_o depose_v from_o their_o principality_n and_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o injury_n do_v unto_o they_o if_o they_o be_v depose_v for_o answer_v whereof_o first_o we_o say_v that_o in_o all_o the_o form_n of_o baptism_n which_o hitherto_o have_v be_v publish_v we_o can_v learn_v that_o there_o be_v ever_o any_o such_o express_a covenant_n as_o the_o cardinal_n here_o mention_v require_v of_o any_o king_n when_o he_o come_v to_o be_v christen_v baptism_n be_v the_o entrance_n ordain_v by_o christ_n into_o the_o church_n which_o be_v his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n and_o agreeable_o to_o the_o nature_n of_o that_o kingdom_n all_o who_o be_v thereby_o to_o enter_v into_o it_o of_o what_o call_v or_o condition_n sooner_o they_o be_v as_o well_o poor_a as_o rich_a private_a person_n as_o prince_n be_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o baptism_n practise_v in_o all_o the_o particular_a church_n in_o the_o world_n for_o aught_o that_o be_v know_v to_o the_o contrary_a either_o themselves_o in_o their_o own_o person_n or_o if_o they_o be_v infant_n by_o their_o surety_n to_o profess_v their_o belief_n in_o christ_n and_o to_o promise_v that_o they_o will_v forsake_v the_o devil_n and_o all_o his_o work_n the_o vain_a pomp_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o world_n with_o all_o covetous_a desire_n of_o the_o same_o and_o carnal_a desire_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o that_o they_o do_v constant_o believe_v god_n holy_a word_n and_o that_o they_o will_v keep_v his_o commandment_n the_o wilful_a breach_n of_o any_o of_o which_o point_n and_o perseverance_n in_o it_o without_o repentance_n do_v indeed_o deprive_v every_o christian_a man_n of_o what_o call_v soever_o he_o be_v from_o the_o interest_n he_o have_v by_o his_o say_a profession_n and_o promise_n when_o he_o be_v baptise_a to_o the_o spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o life_n that_o be_v from_o be_v a_o true_a and_o lively_a member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n and_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o glory_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v but_o that_o any_o man_n by_o the_o breach_n of_o any_o promise_v make_v when_o he_o be_v baptise_a shall_v lose_v that_o which_o he_o gain_v not_o by_o his_o baptism_n or_o that_o the_o church_n do_v never_o receive_v any_o king_n or_o prince_n to_o baptism_n but_o either_o upon_o condition_n in_o express_a term_n or_o by_o implication_n make_v either_o by_o himself_o or_o by_o his_o godfather_n that_o he_o will_v submit_v his_o sceptre_n unto_o christ_n that_o be_v unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o cardinal_n drift_n show_v his_o meaning_n to_o be_v and_o promise_v to_o keep_v and_o defend_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n under_o pain_n of_o the_o loss_n of_o his_o kingdom_n be_v certain_o a_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n and_o be_v never_o hear_v of_o in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n but_o be_v utter_o repugnant_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o scripture_n and_o to_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o christian_a baptism_n these_o secret_a intention_n for_o as_o we_o have_v say_v there_o be_v never_o any_o form_n of_o baptism_n that_o contain_v any_o such_o express_a contract_n as_o the_o cardinal_n speak_v of_o mental_a reservation_n and_o hide_a compact_n such_o as_o man_n be_v never_o teach_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n nor_o ever_o dream_v of_o or_o suspect_v to_o be_v thrust_v into_o one_o of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n may_v well_o become_v the_o impostor_n of_o rome_n but_o be_v altogether_o contrary_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o his_o holy_a apostle_n in_o who_o day_n he_o that_o believe_v be_v baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n without_o any_o such_o juggle_n or_o snare_n lay_v to_o hazard_n and_o entangle_v man_n temporal_a estate_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o gospel_n whereof_o man_n ought_v to_o be_v ashamed_a or_o which_o will_v not_o abide_v the_o touchstone_n of_o truth_n if_o it_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o that_o do_v not_o promote_v the_o spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v call_v in_o that_o respect_n evangelium_fw-la regni_fw-la the_o gospel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n now_o whether_o this_o underhand_a bargain_v be_v suitable_a or_o no_o with_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o whether_o if_o it_o have_v be_v know_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n that_o all_o man_n who_o will_v submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o be_v baptize_v do_v thereby_o bind_v themselves_o to_o be_v subject_n and_o at_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o the_o time_n be_v under_o pain_n to_o lose_v all_o their_o worldly_a estate_n the_o knowledge_n thereof_o will_v not_o rather_o have_v hinder_v than_o either_o promote_v or_o further_v the_o good_a success_n of_o the_o gospel_n no_o man_n be_v so_o simple_a but_o he_o may_v easy_o discern_v it_o assure_o the_o grecian_n who_o do_v so_o long_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o the_o authority_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v challenge_v over_o all_o church_n be_v ignorant_a of_o this_o mystical_a point_n of_o baptism_n and_o so_o be_v all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n for_o many_o age_n or_o else_o there_o will_v not_o have_v be_v so_o great_a stir_n in_o the_o world_n about_o the_o continual_a usurpation_n and_o encroachment_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o be_v many_o way_n testify_v by_o sundry_a ecclesiastical_a history_n but_o we_o insist_v too_o long_o upon_o this_o so_o ridiculous_a and_o impudent_a a_o fiction_n and_o therefore_o will_v come_v to_o the_o cardinal_n be_v principal_a reason_n of_o the_o pope_n say_a indirect_a temporal_a authority_n to_o toss_v king_n and_o kingdom_n up_o and_o down_o as_o he_o list_v the_o ecclesiastical_a commonwealth_n say_v he_o must_v be_v perfect_a and_o sufficient_a of_o herself_o in_o order_n to_o her_o own_o end_n for_o such_o be_v all_o commonwealth_n that_o be_v well_o institute_v and_o therefore_o she_o ought_v to_o have_v all_o necessary_a power_n to_o the_o obtain_n of_o her_o own_o end_n but_o the_o power_n of_o use_v and_o dispose_n of_o temporal_a thing_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o spiritual_a end_n because_o otherwise_o evil_a prince_n may_v without_o punishment_n nourish_v heretic_n and_o overthrow_v religion_n and_o therefore_o the_o ecclesiastical_a commonwealth_n have_v this_o power_n hitherto_o the_o cardinal_n the_o substance_n of_o who_o argument_n be_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n can_v attain_v to_o her_o spiritual_a end_n except_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v authority_n to_o dispose_v of_o temporal_a kingdom_n and_o to_o punish_v king_n by_o depose_v they_o from_o their_o crown_n if_o he_o hold_v it_o expedient_a for_o the_o refutation_n of_o which_o vain_a and_o false_a assertion_n there_o be_v very_o many_o most_o direct_a and_o apparent_a argument_n we_o will_v only_o touch_v some_o few_o of_o they_o our_o saviour_n christ_n in_o his_o day_n and_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o time_n and_o the_o primitive_a
great_a temporal_a power_n in_o the_o pope_n over_o prince_n as_o without_o the_o which_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n can_v not_o attain_v her_o spiritual_a end_n have_v be_v know_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o ancient_a father_n they_o will_v not_o have_v be_v as_o careful_a and_o zealous_a to_o have_v preach_v and_o divulge_v the_o same_o unto_o all_o posterity_n as_o now_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o their_o adherent_n be_v or_o that_o we_o ought_v not_o rather_o to_o believe_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o their_o adherent_n through_o their_o forsake_v the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v give_v over_o by_o god_n unto_o those_o strong_a illusion_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v lie_n and_o maintain_v they_o as_o stiff_o as_o though_o they_o be_v true_a than_o once_o to_o conceive_v that_o the_o holy_a apostle_n and_o ancient_a father_n be_v either_o ignorant_a of_o this_o suppose_a temporal_a authority_n to_o depose_v king_n and_o prince_n for_o the_o end_n so_o often_o mention_v or_o think_v it_o fit_a to_o dissemble_v it_o or_o to_o write_v of_o it_o so_o dark_o as_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n it_o can_v not_o be_v understand_v or_o that_o god_n have_v not_o wonderful_o blind_v the_o heart_n and_o understanding_n both_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o their_o adherent_n in_o this_o particular_a matter_n among_o many_o other_o in_o that_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o church_n and_o spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n consider_v they_o dare_v presume_v to_o maintain_v it_o so_o confident_o that_o the_o say_v spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n can_v attain_v to_o her_o spiritual_a end_n without_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o temporal_a authority_n indirect_o in_o some_o case_n to_o depose_v king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n or_o that_o the_o true_a spiritual_a end_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v in_o this_o that_o the_o devil_n be_v banish_v out_o of_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o her_o true_a member_n christ_n may_v retain_v his_o possession_n of_o they_o through_o their_o faith_n and_o diligence_n to_o repel_v satan_n who_o daily_o labour_v to_o regain_v to_o himself_o his_o own_o possession_n it_o be_v not_o more_o than_o a_o kind_n of_o frenzy_n to_o hold_v and_o maintain_v that_o any_o temporal_a authority_n manage_v by_o the_o pope_n or_o by_o his_o commandment_n against_o king_n and_o prince_n have_v any_o force_n or_o power_n to_o work_v or_o procure_v this_o spiritual_a end_n either_o by_o expelling_a or_o repel_v of_o satan_n or_o to_o nourish_v faith_n or_o to_o continue_v the_o reign_v of_o christ_n in_o any_o man_n heart_n or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o impious_a and_o a_o profane_a assertion_n for_o any_o man_n to_o defend_v that_o the_o weapon_n and_o armour_n of_o this_o spiritual_a warfare_n undertake_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o by_o all_o godly_a bishop_n and_o true_a priest_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o sufficient_a of_o themselves_o to_o procure_v to_o the_o church_n her_o spiritual_a end_n without_o the_o pope_n carnal_a weapon_n or_o temporal_a authority_n to_o depose_v king_n when_o to_o he_o with_o the_o assistance_n of_o his_o cardinal_n it_o shall_v seem_v expedient_a he_o do_v great_o err_v cap._n xi_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o chapter_n follow_v that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o necessity_n of_o one_o visible_a head_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n than_o of_o one_o visible_a monarch_n over_o all_o the_o world_n in_o the_o 35_o the_o and_o 36_o the_o chapter_n of_o our_o first_o book_n we_o have_v show_v at_o large_a that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v create_v the_o world_n and_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v the_o redeemer_n of_o mankind_n after_o their_o transgression_n through_o adam_n fall_n do_v not_o only_o as_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n govern_v all_o the_o world_n the_o same_o be_v in_o that_o respect_n but_o one_o universal_a kingdom_n and_o appoint_v several_a king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n as_o his_o substitute_n to_o rule_v the_o same_o under_o he_o in_o their_o several_a country_n and_o kingdom_n leave_v no_o one_o emperor_n or_o temporal_a monarch_n to_o govern_v they_o all_o but_o likewise_o as_o he_o be_v the_o bless_a lamb_n slay_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n he_o do_v for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o our_o endless_a comfort_n erect_v for_o himself_o in_o this_o world_n a_o spiritual_a kingdom_n call_v his_o church_n consist_v of_o such_o man_n disperse_v throughout_o the_o world_n as_o do_v profess_v his_o name_n and_o be_v himself_o the_o only_a head_n and_o governor_n of_o it_o in_o which_o respect_n it_o be_v right_o to_o be_v term_v but_o one_o catholic_n church_n do_v appoint_v no_o one_o priest_n over_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n but_o several_a priest_n and_o ecclesiastical_a minister_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v the_o particular_a church_n in_o every_o province_n country_n and_o nation_n and_o in_o such_o manner_n and_o form_n as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v rule_v and_o govern_v his_o universal_a kingdom_n and_o catholic_n church_n before_o his_o incarnation_n so_o do_v he_o still_o rule_v and_o govern_v the_o same_o notwithstanding_o any_o of_o those_o vain_a pretence_n and_o ridiculous_a usurpation_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o any_o of_o their_o adherent_n be_v able_a to_o allege_v and_o maintain_v to_o the_o contrary_n in_o the_o gloss_n of_o one_o of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o canon-law_n sanctam_fw-la not_o long_o since_o print_v and_o approve_v by_o gregory_n the_o thirteen_o a_o glossographer_n and_o now_o a_o authentical_a canonist_n do_v write_v in_o this_o sort_n dicò_fw-la quod_fw-la potestas_fw-la spiritualis_fw-la debet_fw-la dominari_fw-la omni_fw-la creaturae_fw-la humanae_fw-la i_o say_v that_o the_o spiritual_a power_n ought_v to_o domineer_v over_o every_o humane_a creature_n and_o why_o say_v he_o so_o forsooth_o per_fw-la rationes_fw-la quas_fw-la hostiensis_n inducit_fw-la in_o summa_fw-la for_o certain_a cause_n and_o reason_n which_o hostiensis_n another_o canonist_n do_v allege_v in_o his_o sum_n but_o he_o stay_v not_o there_o he_o have_v another_o motive_n which_o he_o set_v down_o thus_o item_n quia_fw-la christus_fw-la etc._n etc._n also_o because_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n when_o he_o be_v in_o the_o world_n and_o also_o from_o everlasting_a be_v the_o natural_a lord_n and_o by_o the_o natural_a law_n he_o may_v have_v give_v sentence_n against_o the_o emperor_n and_o any_o other_o whatsoever_o of_o deposition_n and_o damnation_n and_o any_o other_o sentence_n vtpote_fw-la in_fw-la personas_fw-la quas_fw-la creaverat_fw-la &_o donis_fw-la naturalibus_fw-la &_o gratuitis_fw-la dotaverat_fw-la &_o etiam_fw-la conservabat_fw-la as_o against_o person_n who_o he_o have_v create_v and_o endow_v with_o natural_a and_o free_a gift_n and_o also_o who_o he_o do_v preserve_v &_o eadem_fw-la ratione_fw-la vicarius_fw-la ejus_fw-la potest_fw-la and_o by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o reason_n say_v he_o his_o vicar_n may_v so_o do_v what_o will_v pope_n gregory_n by_o his_o canonist_n make_v man_n to_o believe_v that_o all_o emperor_n king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n be_v person_n of_o the_o pope_n creation_n or_o that_o he_o do_v bestow_v on_o they_o free_o any_o gift_n or_o benefit_n of_o nature_n or_o that_o their_o preservation_n do_v depend_v upon_o his_o good_a favour_n and_o providence_n but_o the_o idle_a canonist_n his_o wit_n do_v serve_v he_o no_o better_o than_o to_o make_v in_o effect_n this_o fond_a collection_n christ_n the_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n do_v govern_v rule_n dispose_n and_o preserve_v all_o his_o own_o creature_n therefore_o the_o pope_n must_v likewise_o govern_v rule_n dispose_n and_o preserve_v they_o all_o though_o he_o create_v none_o of_o they_o and_o why_o must_v he_o so_o do_v he_o want_v not_o a_o very_a substantial_a reason_n that_o move_v he_o so_o to_o collect_v which_o follow_v in_o his_o own_o word_n nam_fw-la non_fw-la videretur_fw-la dominus_fw-la discretus_fw-la fuisse_fw-la ut_fw-la cum_fw-la reverentià_fw-la ejus_fw-la loquar_fw-la nisi_fw-la unicum_fw-la post_fw-la se_fw-la talem_fw-la vicarium_fw-la reliquisset_fw-la qui_fw-la haec_fw-la omne_fw-la posset_n fuit_fw-la autem_fw-la iste_fw-la vicarius_fw-la ejus_fw-la petrus_n et_fw-la idem_fw-la dicendum_fw-la est_fw-la de_fw-la successoribus_fw-la petri_n cum_fw-la eadem_fw-la absurditas_fw-la sequeretur_fw-la si_fw-la post_fw-la mortem_fw-la petri_n humanam_fw-la naturam_fw-la à_fw-la se_fw-la creatam_fw-la sine_fw-la regimine_fw-la unius_fw-la personae_fw-la reliquisset_fw-la for_o christ_n shall_v not_o have_v be_v think_v a_o person_n of_o sufficient_a discretion_n that_o with_o his_o reverence_n i_o may_v so_o speak_v except_o he_o have_v leave_v behind_o he_o one_o such_o vicar_n who_o may_v do_v all_o these_o thing_n and_o this_o his_o vicar_n be_v peter_n and_o the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v say_v of_o the_o successor_n of_o peter_n see_v the_o same_o absurdity_n must_v follow_v if_o after_o peter_n death_n he_o
to_o a_o house_n to_o a_o ship_n and_o that_o therefore_o she_o must_v have_v but_o one_o captain_n one_o humane_a head_n one_o king_n one_o pastor_n one_o housholder_n and_o one_o pilot_n that_o although_o there_o be_v but_o one_o and_o proper_a head_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v christ_n that_o govern_v the_o same_o spiritual_o yet_o she_o have_v need_n of_o one_o visible_a head_n or_o otherwise_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o other_o bishop_n pastor_n doctor_n and_o minister_n be_v needless_a that_o although_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v one_o underneath_o he_o by_o who_o she_o may_v be_v govern_v as_o a_o king_n when_o he_o be_v present_a may_v govern_v his_o kingdom_n himself_o but_o be_v absent_a do_v usual_o appoint_v another_o under_o he_o who_o be_v call_v his_o viceroy_n that_o every_o diocese_n and_o province_n have_v her_o bishop_n and_o archbishop_n to_o govern_v the_o particular_a church_n under_o they_o within_o their_o several_a charge_n and_o that_o therefore_o there_o must_v be_v one_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v they_o all_o last_o that_o as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n one_o faith_n and_o one_o baptism_n so_o there_o must_v be_v in_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o one_o chief_a bishop_n and_o judge_n upon_o who_o all_o man_n ought_v to_o depend_v many_o more_o be_v the_o reason_n ground_v upon_o divers_a other_o similitude_n which_o our_o adversary_n have_v heap_v up_o together_o to_o uphold_v the_o pope_n authority_n all_o of_o they_o be_v as_o vain_a and_o frivolous_a as_o the_o former_a for_o it_o be_v certain_a and_o manifest_a that_o as_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v resemble_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o a_o host_n well_o order_v to_o a_o humane_a body_n to_o a_o kingdom_n to_o a_o flock_n of_o sheep_n to_o a_o house_n and_o to_o a_o ship_n so_o christ_n only_o be_v intend_v thereby_o to_o be_v her_o only_a general_n her_o only_a head_n her_o only_a king_n her_o only_a shepherd_n her_o only_a housholder_n and_o her_o only_a pilot._n neither_o can_v any_o other_o thing_n be_v enforce_v from_o the_o word_n mention_v of_o one_o faith_n and_o one_o baptism_n but_o that_o as_o we_o be_v only_o justify_v through_o a_o lively_a faith_n in_o christ_n so_o there_o be_v but_o one_o baptism_n ordain_v whereby_o we_o have_v our_o first_o entrance_n into_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n and_o be_v make_v particular_a member_n of_o his_o catholic_n church_n beside_o in_o the_o like_a sense_n that_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v resemble_v to_o a_o host_n well_o order_v to_o a_o humane_a body_n to_o a_o kingdom_n to_o a_o flock_n to_o a_o house_n to_o a_o ship_n so_o may_v the_o universal_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o he_o be_v the_o creator_n of_o it_o be_v resemble_v to_o they_o all_o and_o the_o aforesaid_a title_n respective_o attribute_v unto_o he_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v a_o host_n under_o he_o well_o order_v and_o he_o be_v the_o general_n of_o it_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v but_o as_o one_o body_n whereof_o he_o be_v the_o head_n be_v the_o life_n of_o all_o man_n from_o who_o as_o from_o their_o head_n they_o have_v their_o sense_n understanding_n and_o motion_n the_o whole_a universal_a world_n be_v but_o his_o kingdom_n and_o he_o be_v the_o king_n of_o it_o rule_v and_o dispose_v it_o as_o seem_v best_a to_o his_o divine_a wisdom_n the_o whole_a world_n be_v with_o he_o but_o one_o flock_n and_o he_o be_v the_o shepherd_n of_o it_o all_o man_n in_o it_o be_v the_o sheep_n of_o his_o pasture_n to_o who_o he_o give_v food_n and_o sustentation_n in_o due_a season_n also_o he_o order_v all_o the_o affair_n in_o the_o world_n as_o a_o good_a housholder_n do_v order_n and_o direct_v all_o the_o business_n and_o trouble_n appertain_v to_o his_o family_n likewife_n the_o whole_a world_n may_v apt_o be_v compare_v to_o a_o ship_n in_o that_o the_o state_n of_o all_o mankind_n live_v in_o it_o be_v subject_a as_o a_o ship_n on_o the_o sea_n unto_o all_o manner_n of_o contrary_a wind_n tempest_n and_o storm_n of_o which_o ship_n be_v not_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v the_o creator_n of_o the_o world_n the_o only_a pilot_n the_o world_n can_v not_o subsist_v and_o as_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v resemble_v to_o a_o fold_n which_o contain_v in_o it_o all_o that_o believe_v in_o christ_n so_o may_v the_o universal_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n over_o all_o the_o world_n be_v compare_v unto_o a_o fold_n in_o that_o it_o contain_v in_o it_o all_o mankind_n general_o his_o heavenly_a care_n and_o providence_n evermore_o protect_v they_o moreover_o as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o catholic_n church_n one_o head_n or_o spiritual_a ruler_n of_o it_o christ_n our_o redeemer_n one_o christian_a faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o gospel_n one_o truth_n one_o and_o the_o selfsame_a form_n or_o nature_n of_o all_o the_o several_a theological_a virtue_n and_o one_o inheritance_n which_o be_v all_o of_o they_o to_o be_v teach_v embrace_v and_o expect_v by_o all_o that_o be_v true_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n so_o there_o be_v but_o one_o universal_a kingdom_n in_o all_o the_o world_n the_o creator_n of_o it_o be_v the_o sole_a emperor_n and_o governor_n of_o it_o one_o moral_a faith_n one_o nature_n of_o truth_n to_o be_v observe_v among_o all_o one_o rule_n and_o nature_n of_o justice_n one_o moral_a law_n one_o nature_n of_o equity_n one_o kind_a form_n or_o nature_n of_o all_o the_o several_a virtue_n both_o moral_a and_o intellectual_a which_o be_v to_o be_v put_v in_o practice_n as_o occasion_n require_v in_o this_o one_o empire_n by_o as_o many_o as_o expect_v from_o christ_n their_o emperor_n any_o happy_a success_n in_o their_o worldly_a affair_n but_o as_o all_o these_o unity_n in_o the_o temporal_a monarchy_n of_o christ_n be_v no_o sufficient_a ground_n to_o warrant_v this_o assertion_n that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v one_o temporal_a king_n or_o emperor_n under_o christ_n to_o govern_v the_o whole_a world_n so_o the_o aforesaid_a spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a unity_n be_v not_o able_a to_o establish_v or_o uphold_v this_o inference_n that_o one_o pope_n must_v of_o necessity_n have_v the_o government_n under_o christ_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n also_o from_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n that_o god_n make_v all_o mankind_n of_o one_o adam_n to_o signify_v that_o he_o will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o depend_v upon_o one_o why_o may_v it_o not_o as_o well_o be_v collect_v that_o he_o mean_v that_o all_o the_o man_n in_o the_o world_n shall_v depend_v upon_o one_o emperor_n for_o cause_n temporal_a as_o upon_o one_o pope_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a likewise_o it_o be_v a_o very_a absurd_a conceit_n that_o our_o jesuit_n maintain_v when_o he_o say_v that_o although_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v one_o underneath_o he_o by_o who_o she_o may_v be_v govern_v as_o a_o king_n when_o he_o be_v present_a may_v govern_v his_o kingdom_n himself_o and_o when_o he_o be_v absent_a appoint_v his_o viceroy_n of_o likelihood_n this_o fellow_n will_v persuade_v we_o that_o christ_n be_v sometime_o absent_a from_o his_o church_n to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o pope_n may_v be_v his_o grand_a deputy_n for_o otherwise_o by_o his_o own_o example_n christ_n may_v govern_v the_o catholic_n church_n without_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o king_n rule_v himself_o in_o his_o own_o kingdom_n need_v no_o viceroy_n that_o christ_n be_v never_o absent_a from_o his_o church_n but_o do_v by_o his_o power_n grace_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n still_o defend_v and_o protect_v it_o it_o be_v plain_a by_o his_o own_o word_n where_o he_o say_v 20._o lo_o i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v true_a that_o he_o tell_v his_o apostle_n that_o he_o be_v to_o depart_v from_o they_o meaning_n that_o they_o must_v be_v deprive_v of_o his_o corporal_a presence_n but_o do_v he_o signify_v unto_o they_o that_o for_o their_o comfort_n he_o will_v leave_v st._n peter_n in_o his_o place_n and_o after_o he_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n st._n peter_n successor_n to_o govern_v his_o church_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n no_o such_o matter_n these_o be_v our_o saviour_n christ_n word_n 7._o it_o be_v expedient_a for_o you_o that_o i_o go_v away_o for_o if_o i_o go_v not_o away_o the_o comforter_n will_v not_o come_v unto_o you_o but_o if_o i_o depart_v 13._o i_o will_v send_v he_o unto_o you_o again_o when_o he_o be_v come_v which_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n he_o will_v lead_v you_o into_o all_o truth_n 17._o again_o i_o will_v pray_v to_o my_o father_n and_o he_o
shall_v give_v you_o another_o comforter_n that_o he_o may_v abide_v with_o you_o for_o ever_o even_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n 26._o again_o the_o comforter_n which_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o the_o father_n will_v send_v in_o my_o name_n he_o shall_v teach_v you_o all_o thing_n 18._o and_o again_o i_o will_v not_o leave_v you_o comfortless_o but_o i_o will_v come_v unto_o you_o which_o he_o do_v continual_o when_o he_o uphold_v his_o church_n daily_o against_o satan_n and_o all_o that_o do_v malign_v it_o so_o as_o we_o may_v far_o more_o right_o and_o safe_o term_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v christ_n vicar-general_n over_o all_o the_o catholic_n church_n than_o we_o may_v ascribe_v that_o title_n to_o the_o pope_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v ever_o present_a and_o ready_a not_o only_o to_o defend_v the_o church_n general_o but_o to_o aid_v and_o comfort_v every_o particular_a member_n of_o it_o wheresoever_o they_o be_v disperse_v upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n which_o we_o suppose_v the_o pope_n be_v not_o able_a to_o perform_v we_o have_v before_o labour_v to_o make_v it_o manifest_a that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v the_o creator_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o governor_n of_o it_o that_o he_o have_v redeem_v and_o sanctify_v unto_o himself_o his_o church_n whereof_o he_o be_v the_o sole_a monarch_n that_o he_o have_v neither_o appoint_v any_o one_o emperor_n under_o he_o to_o govern_v the_o whole_a world_n nor_o any_o one_o priest_n or_o archbishop_n to_o rule_v the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n that_o as_o in_o respect_n of_o christ_n the_o creator_n all_o the_o world_n be_v but_o one_o kingdom_n whereof_o he_o be_v the_o only_a king_n so_o in_o respect_n of_o christ_n our_o redeemer_n all_o that_o believe_v in_o his_o name_n wheresoever_o they_o be_v disperse_v be_v but_o one_o catholic_n church_n and_o that_o the_o say_v one_o catholic_n church_n be_v not_o otherwise_o visible_a in_o this_o world_n than_o be_v the_o say_v one_o universal_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n the_o creator_n of_o it_o viz._n by_o the_o several_a and_o distinct_a part_n of_o they_o as_o by_o this_o or_o that_o national_a church_n by_o this_o or_o that_o temporal_a kingdom_n for_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v make_v the_o external_a government_n of_o his_o catholic_n church_n suitable_a to_o the_o government_n of_o his_o universal_a monarchy_n over_o all_o the_o world_n have_v by_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n order_v to_o be_v place_v in_o every_o kingdom_n as_o before_o in_o another_o place_n we_o have_v observe_v archbishop_n bishop_n and_o inferior_a minister_n to_o govern_v the_o particular_a church_n therein_o plant_v priest_n minister_n in_o every_o particular_a parish_n and_o over_o they_o bishop_n within_o their_o several_a diocese_n as_o likewise_o archbishop_n to_o have_v the_o inspection_n and_o charge_n over_o all_o the_o rest_n according_a to_o the_o platform_n ordain_v in_o substance_n by_o himself_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o he_o have_v in_o like_a manner_n appoint_v king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n with_o their_o inferior_a magistrate_n of_o divers_a sort_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v his_o people_n under_o he_o in_o every_o kingdom_n country_n and_o sovereign_a principality_n some_o of_o their_o say_a inferior_a magistrate_n have_v authority_n from_o their_o sovereign_n in_o particular_a parish_n some_o in_o hundred_o some_o in_o shire_n or_o country_n and_o some_o in_o government_n of_o large_a extent_n there_o be_v among_o they_o all_o divers_a degree_n of_o person_n one_o over_o another_o and_o their_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n excel_v they_o all_o in_o power_n and_o authority_n as_o the_o person_n appoint_v by_o god_n to_o rule_v and_o direct_v all_o their_o subject_n of_o what_o call_v soever_o in_o the_o right_a use_n of_o the_o authority_n and_o magistracy_n which_o they_o have_v commit_v unto_o they_o and_o we_o can_v but_o wonder_n as_o well_o at_o our_o say_a jesuit_n where_o he_o say_v that_o although_o there_o be_v but_o one_o and_o proper_a head_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v christ_n that_o govern_v the_o same_o spiritual_o yet_o she_o have_v need_n of_o one_o visible_a head_n or_o otherwise_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o other_o bishop_n pastor_n doctor_n and_o minister_n be_v needless_a as_o likewise_o at_o our_o countryman_n harding_n who_o say_v as_o be_v above-noted_n that_o if_o god_n have_v not_o defer_v to_o one_o man_n that_o be_v to_z peter_z and_o his_o successor_n the_o rule_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n he_o shall_v have_v bring_v among_o his_o faithful_a people_n that_o unruly_a confusion_n which_o be_v call_v a_o anarchy_n for_o be_v these_o their_o vain_a conceit_n and_o imagination_n true_a then_o will_v it_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n follow_v that_o albeit_o there_o be_v but_o one_o and_o proper_a monarch_n over_o all_o the_o world_n which_o be_v christ_n that_o create_v it_o yet_o the_o same_o have_v need_n of_o one_o visible_a monarch_n or_o otherwise_o emperor_n and_o all_o other_o king_n prince_n and_o civil_a magistrate_n be_v needless_a or_o otherwise_o christ_n shall_v have_v leave_v among_o his_o people_n throughout_o the_o world_n that_o unruly_a confusion_n and_o destruction_n of_o all_o commonwealth_n so_o much_o abhor_v of_o prince_n which_o the_o grecian_n call_v a_o anarchy_n which_o be_v a_o state_n for_o lack_v of_o order_n in_o governor_n without_o any_o government_n at_o all_o the_o fondness_n of_o which_o two_o consequent_n do_v so_o plain_o argue_v the_o folly_n and_o falsehood_n of_o the_o two_o former_a as_o we_o need_v no_o other_o refutation_n of_o they_o for_o if_o all_o christian_a kingdom_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n will_v banish_v the_o pope_n with_o his_o usurp_v authority_n as_o the_o monarchy_n of_o brittany_n have_v do_v and_o retain_v under_o they_o the_o apostolical_a form_n of_o church-government_n by_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n with_o other_o degree_n of_o minister_n as_o before_o we_o have_v divers_a time_n specify_v they_o shall_v find_v the_o church_n in_o their_o several_a dominion_n as_o well_o govern_v by_o they_o the_o say_a archbishop_n and_o bishop_n without_o one_o pope_n to_o rule_v the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n as_o they_o have_v experience_n of_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o their_o own_o regal_a and_o sovereign_a form_n of_o government_n in_o their_o several_a kingdom_n and_o country_n notwithstanding_o there_o be_v no_o one_o monarch_n over_o all_o the_o world_n to_o command_v or_o direct_v they_o and_o for_o a_o example_n not_o to_o be_v control_v to_o make_v this_o good_a that_o here_o we_o affirm_v we_o leave_v unto_o they_o god_n be_v own_o form_n both_o of_o temporal_a and_o ecclesiastical_a government_n establish_v by_o himself_o among_o his_o own_o people_n the_o jew_n nay_o why_o shall_v we_o doubt_v but_o that_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n notwithstanding_o the_o mist_n and_o darkness_n wherewith_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v daily_o seek_v to_o dim_v their_o eye_n have_v have_v long_o since_o a_o glimpse_n of_o this_o light_n and_o truth_n about_o 400._o and_o some_o odd_a year_n since_o in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o henry_n the_o second_o and_o in_o the_o day_n of_o richard_n the_o first_o both_o of_o they_o king_n of_o england_n first_o baldwin_n and_o then_o hubertus_n be_v archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n there_o be_v a_o mighty_a controversy_n betwixt_o they_o and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n about_o the_o erect_n of_o a_o new_a cathedral_n church_n in_o lambeth_n the_o say_v king_n and_o archbishop_n have_v a_o resolution_n utter_o to_o banish_v out_o of_o this_o kingdom_n the_o pope_n authority_n if_o the_o monk_n of_o canterbury_n in_o their_o allegation_n to_o pope_n celestine_n against_o the_o say_a cathedral_n church_n do_v inform_v he_o true_o these_o be_v their_o word_n as_o they_o be_v record_v by_o reginaldus_n one_o of_o the_o say_a monk_n as_o it_o seem_v then_o live_v who_o have_v write_v a_o whole_a book_n of_o that_o matter_n 1._o in_o tantum_fw-la enim_fw-la jam_fw-la opus_fw-la processit_fw-la quod_fw-la ibi_fw-la ordinatur_fw-la decanus_n praepositus_fw-la &_o plusquam_fw-la quadraginta_fw-la canonici_fw-la de_fw-la bonis_fw-la cantuariensis_n ecclesiae_fw-la fundati_fw-la genere_fw-la nobiles_fw-la divitiis_fw-la affluentes_fw-la cognati_fw-la regum_fw-la &_o pontificum_fw-la quidam_fw-la ipsi_fw-la regi_fw-la adhaerent_fw-la quidam_fw-la fisci_fw-la negotia_fw-la administrantes_fw-la familiares_fw-la episcopis_fw-la &_o iisdem_fw-la confoederati_fw-la adversuss_v tantos_fw-la &_o tale_n quid_fw-la poterit_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la cantuariensis_n certè_fw-la timendum_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la solùm_fw-la cantuariensis_n ecclesiae_fw-la sed_fw-la quod_fw-la deus_fw-la avertat_fw-la ne_fw-la huius_fw-la rei_fw-la occasione_n sedis_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la autoritati_fw-la in_o partibus_fw-la anglicanis_fw-la derogetur_fw-la quùm_fw-la enim_fw-la fundaretur_fw-la canonica_n illa_fw-la vox_fw-la erat_fw-la omnium_fw-la sententia_fw-la singulorum_fw-la ut_fw-la ibi_fw-la essent_fw-la
episcopi_fw-la quasi_fw-la cardinal_n archiepiscopus_fw-la sederet_fw-la quasi_fw-la papa_n &_o ibi_fw-la omnis_fw-la appellatio_fw-la subsisteret_fw-la &_o querela_fw-la hoc_fw-la quidem_fw-la rex_fw-la henricus_fw-la machinabatur_fw-la approbant_fw-la quamplures_fw-la episcopi_fw-la hâc_fw-la de_fw-la causâ_fw-la ut_fw-la dictum_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la possent_fw-la de_fw-la sub_fw-la jugo_fw-la sanctae_fw-la romanae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la colla_fw-la excutere_fw-la now_o the_o build_n of_o the_o say_a church_n be_v so_o forward_o that_o there_o be_v ordain_v there_o a_o dean_n a_o provost_n and_o more_o than_o 40._o canon_n found_v of_o the_o good_n of_o the_o church_n of_o canterbury_n by_o birth_n nobleman_n abound_v in_o wealth_n ally_n of_o the_o king_n and_o of_o the_o bishop_n some_o of_o they_o do_v adhere_v to_o the_o king_n some_o have_v office_n in_o the_o exchequer_n all_o of_o they_o familiar_a friend_n to_o the_o bishop_n and_o of_o a_o confederacy_n with_o they_o against_o such_o and_o so_o great_a person_n what_o be_v the_o church_n of_o canterbury_n able_a to_o do_v certain_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v not_o only_o that_o the_o church_n of_o canterbury_n shall_v hereby_o be_v overthrow_v but_o that_o upon_o this_o occasion_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostolical_a see_v which_o god_n forbid_v shall_v in_o england_n be_v great_o diminish_v und_fw-ge prejudice_v for_o when_o this_o canonry_n or_o cathedral_n church_n be_v found_v it_o be_v the_o common_a fame_n and_o the_o opinion_n of_o every_o man_n that_o it_o be_v found_v to_o this_o end_n that_o bishop_n shall_v be_v there_o as_o it_o be_v cardinal_n and_o that_o the_o archbishop_n shall_v sit_v among_o they_o as_o pope_n and_o that_o there_o all_o appeal_n and_o complaint_n shall_v be_v determine_v this_o assure_o be_v plot_v by_o king_n henry_n and_o the_o same_o very_a many_o bishop_n do_v allow_v for_o this_o cause_n or_o end_n that_o so_o they_o may_v deliver_v their_o neck_n from_o under_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o rome_n again_o after_o the_o death_n of_o celestin_n the_o four_o the_o cardinal_n be_v at_o so_o great_a a_o dissension_n among_o themselves_o as_o that_o they_o can_v not_o agree_v for_o the_o space_n of_o a_o year_n and_o nine_o month_n who_o shall_v succeed_v he_o both_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o french_a be_v great_o move_v and_o offend_v therewith_o the_o emperor_n find_v his_o advice_n unto_o they_o to_o hasten_v their_o choice_n to_o be_v despise_v and_o scorn_v and_o how_o dishonest_o some_o of_o they_o have_v break_v their_o promise_n and_o oath_n unto_o he_o make_v in_o that_o behalf_n he_o gather_v a_o great_a host_n and_o deal_v sharp_o with_o they_o and_o from_o france_n they_o receive_v a_o message_n that_o if_o they_o continue_v to_o dally_v as_o they_o do_v in_o prolong_v the_o choice_n of_o a_o new_a pope_n they_o will_v utter_o leave_v rome_n and_o choose_v to_o themselves_o a_o pope_n of_o their_o own_o to_o govern_v the_o church_n on_o this_o side_n the_o alps._n hereof_o matthew_n paris_n write_v thus_o 1243._o per_fw-la idem_fw-la tempus_fw-la miserunt_fw-la franci_n solennes_n nuncios_fw-la ad_fw-la curiam_fw-la romanam_fw-la significantes_fw-la persuadendo_fw-la praecisè_fw-la &_o efficaciter_fw-la ut_fw-la ipsi_fw-la cardinal_n papam_fw-la ritè_fw-la eligentes_fw-la vniversali_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la solatium_fw-la pastorale_n maturiùs_fw-la providerent_fw-la vel_fw-la ipsi_fw-la franci_n propter_fw-la negligentiam_fw-la eorum_fw-la de_fw-la sibi_fw-la eligendo_fw-la &_o providendo_fw-la summo_fw-la pontifice_fw-la citra_fw-la montes_n cui_fw-la obedire_fw-la tenerentur_fw-la quantocyùs_fw-la contrectarent_fw-la about_o that_o time_n the_o state_n of_o france_n do_v send_v their_o solemn_a messenger_n to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n signify_v unto_o they_o and_o persuade_v they_o precise_o and_o effectual_o that_o either_o the_o cardinal_n shall_v more_o speedy_o provide_v for_o the_o universal_a church_n her_o pastoral_a comfort_n by_o their_o due_a choice_n of_o a_o new_a pope_n or_o else_o they_o themselves_o the_o french_a because_o of_o their_o negligence_n will_v forthwith_o fall_v into_o deliberation_n of_o choose_v and_o provide_v for_o themselves_o a_o pope_n on_o this_o side_n the_o mountain_n who_o they_o may_v be_v bind_v to_o obey_v thus_o the_o say_a history_n whereby_o as_o also_o by_o the_o former_a word_n of_o the_o monk_n of_o canterbury_n it_o be_v very_o evident_a that_o both_o england_n and_o france_n be_v long_o since_o in_o deliberation_n to_o have_v abandon_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n out_o of_o both_o those_o kingdom_n as_o find_v no_o necessity_n of_o the_o universal_a overswaying_a power_n of_o the_o roman_a papacy_n and_o that_o the_o church_n within_o their_o several_a country_n and_o territory_n may_v receive_v as_o great_a benefit_n and_o comfort_n by_o the_o ecclesiastical_a government_n of_o their_o own_o archbishop_n in_o every_o respect_n as_o ever_o they_o have_v do_v from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o as_o it_o may_v true_o be_v say_v not_o of_o one_o king_n to_o govern_v all_o the_o world_n but_o of_o every_o particular_a king_n in_o his_o own_o kingdom_n so_o may_v it_o be_v true_o affirm_v not_o of_o one_o pope_n to_o govern_v the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n but_o of_o every_o archbishop_n in_o any_o national_a church_n and_o province_n to_o rule_v and_o direct_v the_o same_o that_o under_o the_o government_n of_o one_o viz._n of_o king_n for_o temporal_a cause_n and_o of_o archbishop_n for_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n there_o be_v the_o best_a order_n the_o great_a strength_n the_o most_o stability_n for_o continuance_n and_o the_o easy_a manner_n and_o form_n of_o rule_v we_o have_v speak_v hitherto_o of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n especial_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o afterward_o for_o the_o space_n of_o 300._o year_n when_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n be_v enemy_n unto_o it_o whereby_o we_o do_v infer_v that_o if_o the_o particular_a church_n settle_v then_o almost_o in_o every_o country_n and_o nation_n throughout_o the_o world_n have_v so_o good_a success_n when_o there_o be_v no_o christian_a magistrate_n nor_o have_v any_o assistance_n of_o the_o temporal_a sword_n for_o the_o strengthen_n of_o their_o ecclesiastical_a government_n but_o only_a minister_n to_o teach_v and_o direct_v their_o parishioner_n in_o the_o way_n of_o godliness_n and_o bishop_n over_o they_o in_o every_o diocese_n to_o oversee_v and_o rule_v as_o well_o the_o minister_n as_o the_o several_a people_n commit_v to_o their_o charge_n that_o they_o teach_v no_o new_a doctrine_n or_o run_v into_o schism_n and_o archbishop_n over_o they_o all_o in_o every_o national_a church_n and_o province_n for_o the_o moderate_n and_o appease_v of_o such_o opposition_n and_o dissension_n as_o may_v otherwise_o have_v rise_v among_o the_o bishop_n and_o so_o consequent_o have_v wrought_v great_a distraction_n betwixt_o their_o diocesan_n church_n how_o much_o more_o than_o be_v the_o say_v particular_a church_n like_o to_o flourish_v and_o prosper_v under_o such_o a_o form_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n wherein_o the_o christian_a magistrate_n be_v become_v to_o be_v as_o the_o chief_a member_n of_o the_o church_n so_o the_o chief_a governor_n of_o it_o to_o keep_v as_o well_o the_o say_a archbishop_n within_o their_o bound_n and_o limit_n as_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o christian_n bishop_n minister_n and_o parishioner_n that_o every_o one_o in_o their_o several_a place_n may_v execute_v and_o discharge_v their_o distinct_a office_n and_o duty_n which_o be_v commit_v unto_o they_o we_o shall_v have_v fit_a occasion_n hereafter_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o christian_a prince_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a here_o we_o do_v only_o still_o prosecute_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n when_o temporal_a king_n and_o prince_n be_v she_o great_a and_o mortal_a enemy_n and_o the_o folly_n if_o not_o the_o obstinacy_n of_o our_o adversary_n who_o either_o see_v it_o not_o or_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v it_o that_o peace_n and_o quietness_n may_v as_o well_o be_v preserve_v in_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n by_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n without_o one_o pope_n to_o govern_v they_o all_o as_o by_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n in_o all_o the_o kingdom_n and_o temporal_a government_n in_o the_o world_n without_o one_o temporal_a monarch_n to_o rule_v and_o oversway_v they_o for_o our_o adversary_n shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v that_o it_o may_v be_v ascribe_v as_o we_o have_v before_o say_v more_o to_o any_o want_n of_o discretion_n and_o due_a providence_n in_o our_o saviour_n christ_n that_o he_o have_v not_o appoint_v the_o pope_n to_o govern_v the_o catholic_n church_n than_o that_o he_o have_v not_o assign_v the_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o one_o king_n or_o emperor_n rather_o it_o be_v to_o be_v attribute_v to_o their_o audacious_a temerity_n and_o presumption_n that_o will_v either_o enforce_v
our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o be_v content_v with_o that_o form_n of_o government_n in_o his_o church_n which_o they_o think_v good_a to_o assign_v unto_o he_o and_o so_o make_v he_o to_o divide_v stake_n as_o the_o phrase_n be_v with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o else_o to_o be_v repute_v among_o they_o for_o a_o person_n of_o little_a discretion_n and_o providence_n and_o to_o have_v deal_v absurd_o in_o order_v and_o settle_v the_o external_a government_n of_o his_o church_n as_o he_o have_v order_v and_o settle_v the_o external_a government_n of_o his_o universal_a kingdom_n over_o all_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n in_o the_o world_n which_o profane_a wicked_a and_o blasphemous_a proceed_n with_o christ_n will_v no_o doubt_n in_o short_a time_n receive_v a_o heavy_a judgement_n in_o that_o although_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n have_v long_o wrought_v in_o a_o mystery_n and_o take_v upon_o he_o for_o his_o time_n and_o so_o every_o one_o of_o his_o successor_n during_o their_o life_n to_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n vaunt_a that_o the_o say_a temple_n or_o spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v whole_o at_o his_o command_n yet_o now_o he_o begin_v to_o be_v reveal_v and_o disclose_v to_o be_v that_o impostor_n that_o by_o the_o assistance_n of_o satan_n have_v with_o power_n and_o sign_n and_o lie_v wonder_n in_o all_o deceiveableness_n and_o unrighteousness_n long_o abuse_v the_o christian_a world_n and_o be_v consequent_o to_o be_v consume_v by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n with_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o mouth_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n and_o till_o this_o work_n be_v thorough_o effect_v we_o be_v not_o to_o censure_v christ_n either_o for_o his_o discretion_n or_o divine_a providence_n but_o indeed_o to_o admire_v and_o magnify_v they_o both_o consider_v that_o by_o his_o government_n both_o of_o the_o universal_a world_n as_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o catholic_n church_n as_o he_o be_v the_o redeemer_n of_o it_o in_o such_o manner_n and_o form_n as_o we_o have_v before_o express_v by_o several_a king_n and_o priest_n within_o their_o kingdom_n province_n and_o diocese_n he_o have_v leave_v unto_o they_o certain_a general_a rule_n and_o motive_n which_o be_v diligent_o observe_v do_v tend_v to_o the_o universal_a good_a and_o preservation_n both_o of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o though_o they_o have_v no_o assistance_n therein_o from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o as_o it_o be_v a_o apt_a and_o good_a reason_n to_o persuade_v all_o king_n and_o kingdom_n to_o live_v quiet_o with_o their_o neighbour_n prince_n and_o nation_n and_o to_o be_v at_o a_o firm_a league_n and_o friendship_n with_o they_o because_o they_o have_v all_o but_o one_o heavenly_a king_n be_v member_n and_o subject_n of_o one_o universal_a kingdom_n have_v or_o aught_o to_o have_v but_o one_o moral_a faith_n one_o rule_n of_o justice_n one_o square_a for_o equity_n one_o nature_n of_o truth_n one_o moral_a law_n one_o kind_a form_n and_o nature_n of_o all_o the_o several_a virtue_n both_o moral_a and_o intellectual_a one_o natural_a instinct_n to_o know_v god_n and_o to_o worship_v he_o and_o one_o form_n and_o rule_n of_o mutual_a love_n and_o affection_n so_o the_o particular_a church_n disperse_v over_o the_o world_n when_o they_o have_v small_a comfort_n from_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n hold_v themselves_o bind_v to_o have_v a_o special_a care_n one_o over_o another_o that_o matter_n of_o religion_n may_v proceed_v by_o one_o rule_n with_o mutual_a agreement_n and_o uniformity_n for_o avoid_v of_o schism_n in_o that_o they_o well_o know_v they_o have_v all_o but_o one_o redeemer_n and_o saviour_n one_o heavenly_a spiritual_a king_n or_o archbishop_n be_v all_o of_o they_o member_n of_o one_o mystical_a body_n whereof_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n have_v all_o of_o they_o but_o one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o spiritual_a food_n one_o hope_n one_o bond_n of_o charity_n one_o redemption_n and_o one_o everlasting_a inheritance_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v which_o be_v such_o argument_n of_o mutual_a consociation_n in_o those_o day_n as_o when_o any_o great_a matter_n of_o importance_n do_v fall_v out_o in_o any_o one_o country_n through_o the_o wilfulness_n and_o obstinacy_n of_o heretic_n and_o crafty_a seducer_n of_o the_o people_n which_o perhaps_o be_v countenance_v with_o some_o of_o strength_n and_o great_a power_n than_o can_v easy_o be_v withstand_v their_o neighbour_n church_n adjoin_v do_v sometime_o assist_v they_o by_o their_o letter_n with_o the_o best_a counsel_n they_o can_v give_v they_o and_o sometime_o do_v send_v some_o especial_a learned_a man_n unto_o they_o for_o the_o better_a suppress_n of_o those_o evil_n and_o sometime_o when_o occasion_n fall_v out_o thereunto_o move_a sundry_a archbishop_n and_o bishop_n of_o several_a country_n with_o other_o learned_a priest_n and_o person_n of_o principal_a note_n do_v as_o they_o may_v for_o fear_n of_o danger_n meet_v together_o and_o upon_o due_a and_o mature_a deliberation_n do_v so_o order_n and_o determine_v of_o matter_n as_o thereby_o heresy_n and_o contention_n be_v still_o suppress_v and_o the_o church_n in_o those_o country_n receive_v great_a comfort_n and_o quietness_n and_o if_o in_o those_o troublesome_a time_n the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n be_v thus_o preserve_v how_o much_o more_o now_o under_o christian_a magistrate_n may_v it_o be_v strengthen_v uphold_v and_o maintain_v without_o the_o pope_n not_o only_a within_o their_o several_a kingdom_n but_o likewise_o throughout_o in_o effect_n all_o these_o western_a part_n of_o the_o world_n if_o christian_a king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n will_v agree_v together_o for_o a_o general_a council_n to_o the_o end_n that_o all_o those_o heresy_n error_n imposture_n and_o presumption_n wherewith_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v long_o and_o be_v now_o miserable_o shake_v and_o disturb_v may_v be_v at_o the_o last_o utter_o suppress_v and_o extinguish_v many_o other_o mean_n may_v here_o be_v allege_v to_o show_v how_o the_o state_n of_o christian_a religion_n be_v to_o be_v uphold_v and_o maintain_v without_o any_o assistance_n from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o our_o purpose_n be_v in_o this_o place_n to_o resemble_v and_o compare_v the_o government_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n with_o the_o universal_a government_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n we_o hold_v it_o sufficient_a to_o observe_v that_o every_o national_a church_n may_v as_o well_o subsist_v of_o herself_o without_o one_o universal_a bishop_n as_o every_o kingdom_n may_v do_v without_o one_o general_a monarch_n nevertheless_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o in_o this_o particular_a tractate_n we_o have_v be_v very_o tedious_a and_o it_o may_v be_v think_v perhaps_o by_o some_o that_o our_o pain_n therein_o be_v altogether_o superfluous_a because_o many_o of_o our_o adversary_n do_v in_o effect_n acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v the_o like_a necessity_n of_o one_o emperor_n to_o govern_v all_o the_o world_n as_o there_o be_v of_o one_o pope_n to_o have_v the_o oversight_n and_o order_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n indeed_o upon_o the_o sift_v of_o the_o usurp_a authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n our_o adversary_n find_v that_o by_o their_o argument_n to_o bolster_v up_o his_o say_a authority_n the_o erection_n of_o one_o man_n to_o govern_v the_o world_n in_o temporal_a cause_n be_v as_o necessary_o to_o be_v enforce_v as_o of_o one_o pope_n to_o govern_v the_o whole_a church_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n they_o be_v grow_v to_o this_o most_o admirable_a insolency_n and_o most_o high_a presumption_n as_o that_o they_o dare_v affirm_v and_o do_v take_v upon_o they_o without_o all_o modesty_n to_o maintain_v it_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v both_o the_o monarch_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o the_o emperor_n of_o all_o the_o world_n which_o mystery_n of_o they_o be_v thus_o manage_v and_o by_o piecemeal_n unfold_v after_o this_o sort_n viz._n that_o to_o ease_v the_o pope_n lest_o he_o may_v be_v oppress_v with_o multitude_n of_o affair_n if_o he_o shall_v take_v upon_o he_o in_o his_o own_o person_n to_o govern_v the_o whole_a world_n as_o he_o do_v direct_v the_o especial_a affair_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n they_o do_v assign_v unto_o he_o power_n and_o authority_n to_o create_v and_o delegate_v under_o he_o as_o his_o feudatary_n or_o vassal_n this_o one_o suppose_a emperor_n to_o who_o they_o say_v he_o may_v commit_v the_o special_a execution_n of_o his_o temporal_a sword_n to_o be_v draw_v and_o put_v up_o at_o his_o direction_n and_o commandment_n 20._o and_o for_o this_o one_o base_a emperor_n over_o all_o the_o world_n many_o be_v now_o as_o busy_a as_o other_o be_v carerius_fw-la to_o maintain_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n over_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n now_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v
universal_a dominion_n over_o all_o the_o world_n temporaelitèr_n temporal_o and_o likewise_o sufficient_a power_n to_o institute_v and_o appoint_v one_o emperor_n under_o he_o as_o his_o substitute_n to_o rule_v the_o whole_a world_n they_o use_v this_o argument_n ibid._n summus_n pontifex_fw-la instituit_fw-la ac_fw-la confirmat_fw-la imperatorem_fw-la sed_fw-la imperator_fw-la habet_fw-la dominium_fw-la universale_fw-la temporaliter_fw-la in_o toto_fw-la mundo_fw-la ergo_fw-la &_o papa_n habet_fw-la hoc_fw-la idem_fw-la dominium_fw-la temporaliter_fw-la the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v ordain_v and_o confirm_v the_o emperor_n but_o the_o emperor_n have_v universal_a dominion_n temporal_o in_o the_o whole_a world_n therefore_o the_o pope_n have_v the_o very_a same_o temporal_a dominion_n and_o about_o ten_o year_n since_o one_o andrew_n hoy_o the_o greek_a professor_n at_o douai_n make_v a_o oration_n de_fw-fr novae_fw-la apud_fw-la europeos_n monarchiae_fw-la pro_fw-la tempore_fw-la utilitate_fw-la take_v upon_o he_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n be_v the_o fit_a person_n of_o all_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n in_o europe_n to_o be_v advance_v unto_o this_o great_a monarchy_n but_o what_o shall_v we_o trouble_v ourselves_o with_o this_o point_n the_o king_n of_o spain_n we_o suppose_v will_v great_o scorn_v to_o be_v the_o pope_n vassal_n and_o the_o emperor_n that_o now_o be_v or_o that_o shall_v succeed_v he_o hereafter_o as_o likewise_o all_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n in_o the_o world_n may_v see_v most_o evident_o how_o gross_o and_o shameful_o they_o be_v abuse_v and_o how_o notable_o they_o neglect_v the_o greatness_n of_o their_o own_o calling_n especial_o they_o who_o have_v be_v heretofore_o or_o shall_v be_v hereafter_o emperor_n in_o that_o they_o do_v intermeddle_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o with_o the_o pope_n or_o receive_v from_o he_o either_o their_o confirmation_n or_o coronation_n in_o that_o thereby_o he_o presume_v most_o ridiculous_o and_o without_o any_o show_n of_o truth_n to_o challenge_v they_o for_o his_o servant_n and_o vassal_n it_o have_v be_v before_o show_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o cardinalize_v jesuit_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o temporal_a possession_n at_o all_o but_o such_o as_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o emperor_n and_o other_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n in_o consideration_n whereof_o seeing_z that_o now_o they_o insult_v so_o notable_o over_o they_o all_o both_o prince_n king_n and_o emperor_n be_v so_o far_o from_o acknowledge_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o emperor_n subject_n or_o to_o hold_v their_o say_a possession_n either_o of_o he_o or_o of_o any_o king_n that_o bestow_v they_o upon_o they_o we_o do_v very_o think_v that_o the_o say_v prince_n king_n and_o emperor_n who_o have_v be_v so_o beneficial_a to_o the_o say_a bishop_n shall_v never_o show_v themselves_o to_o be_v of_o that_o princely_a magnanimity_n and_o prowess_n which_o their_o high_a place_n do_v require_v nor_o free_v their_o sceptre_n from_o the_o thraldom_n and_o base_a subjection_n to_o their_o usurp_a authority_n until_o either_o they_o take_v from_o they_o what_o before_o they_o give_v they_o or_o bring_v they_o to_o a_o more_o dutiful_a acknowledgement_n of_o their_o duty_n unto_o they_o and_o what_o we_o say_v of_o the_o pope_n we_o likewise_o do_v hold_v concern_v all_o the_o clergy_n beside_o in_o europe_n or_o elsewhere_o that_o if_o they_o shall_v either_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o their_o subjection_n unto_o their_o temporal_a sovereign_n under_o who_o they_o live_v or_o deny_v to_o hold_v the_o possession_n of_o their_o several_a church_n of_o their_o say_a sovereign_n or_o to_o do_v they_o homage_n for_o the_o same_o they_o may_v lawful_o in_o our_o judgement_n not_o only_o resume_v the_o say_v possession_n into_o their_o own_o hand_n but_o likewise_o proceed_v against_o they_o as_o rebel_n and_o traitor_n according_a to_o the_o form_n of_o their_o several_a law_n but_o this_o be_v a_o digression_n for_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o chapter_n we_o undertake_v to_o deal_v with_o those_o only_o who_o though_o they_o maintain_v the_o pope_n general_a supremacy_n over_o the_o catholic_n church_n yet_o they_o deny_v upon_o many_o weighty_a reason_n that_o god_n do_v ever_o ordain_v any_o one_o emperor_n to_o govern_v all_o the_o world_n but_o how_o long_o they_o will_v deny_v it_o we_o know_v not_o in_o that_o the_o principal_a jesuit_n himself_o write_v thus_o utrum_fw-la expediret_fw-la omnes_fw-la provincias_fw-la mundi_fw-la etc._n etc._n utrum_fw-la whether_o it_o be_v expedient_a that_o all_o the_o province_n in_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v govern_v by_o one_o chief_a king_n in_o thing_n politic_a although_o the_o same_o be_v not_o necessary_a it_o may_v be_v a_o question_n mihi_fw-la tamen_fw-la omnino_fw-la expedire_fw-la videtur_fw-la si_fw-la possit_fw-la eo_fw-la perveniri_fw-la sine_fw-la injustitiâ_fw-la &_o bellicis_fw-la cladibus_fw-la yet_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o expedient_a if_o such_o a_o monarchical_a government_n over_o all_o the_o world_n may_v be_v get_v without_o injustice_n and_o such_o calamity_n and_o misery_n as_o usual_o follow_v war._n what_o this_o jesuit_n do_v incline_v unto_o it_o be_v hereby_o evident_a but_o in_o that_o he_o confess_v that_o such_o a_o monarchical_a civil_a government_n be_v not_o necessary_a that_o be_v enough_o for_o our_o purpose_n because_o hereby_o it_o likewise_o follow_v as_o before_o we_o have_v show_v that_o the_o government_n of_o the_o pope_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v in_o every_o respect_n as_o little_a necessary_a can._n x._o and_o therefore_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v affirm_v under_o colour_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n or_o that_o can_v be_v true_o ground_v upon_o natural_a reason_n or_o philosophy_n that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n shall_v have_v show_v himself_o to_o have_v have_v no_o discretion_n except_o he_o have_v leave_v one_o chief_a bishop_n to_o have_v govern_v all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n or_o that_o except_o he_o appoint_v one_o to_o the_o say_a end_n he_o shall_v as_o a_o person_n void_a of_o providence_n have_v leave_v his_o faithful_a people_n in_o a_o miserable_a confusion_n and_o without_o any_o government_n at_o all_o or_o that_o any_o of_o all_o the_o argument_n that_o may_v be_v deduce_v from_o philosophy_n and_o natural_a reason_n to_o prove_v that_o one_o man_n ought_v to_o have_v the_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n in_o spiritual_a cause_n be_v not_o as_o forcible_a to_o prove_v that_o one_o king_n or_o emperor_n ought_v to_o have_v the_o rule_n and_o government_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o cause_n temporal_a or_o that_o any_o of_o the_o philosopher_n ever_o mean_v to_o have_v their_o reason_n allege_v by_o they_o to_o prove_v that_o in_o every_o particular_a country_n the_o monarchical_a form_n of_o temporal_a government_n be_v the_o best_a to_o be_v extend_v to_o prove_v that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v either_o one_o bishop_n over_o all_o the_o catholic_n church_n whereof_o they_o have_v no_o knowledge_n or_o one_o emperor_n over_o all_o the_o world_n or_o that_o because_o all_o man_n have_v their_o beginning_n from_o adam_n it_o do_v not_o as_o well_o follow_v that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v one_o emperor_n to_o govern_v all_o the_o world_n as_o one_o bishop_n over_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n or_o that_o aaron_n be_v any_o more_o a_o figure_n of_o st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n that_o they_o several_o in_o their_o time_n shall_v govern_v the_o whole_a church_n than_o king_n david_n be_v of_o augustus_n the_o emperor_n and_o his_o successor_n that_o they_o several_o in_o their_o time_n shall_v have_v commit_v unto_o they_o the_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n or_o that_o the_o resemblance_n in_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o a_o host_n well_o order_v to_o a_o humane_a body_n to_o a_o kingdom_n to_o a_o fold_n to_o a_o house_n to_o a_o ship_n may_v not_o fit_o be_v apply_v as_o well_o to_o the_o universal_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n over_o all_o the_o world_n as_o unto_o the_o church_n and_o so_o consequent_o as_o well_o to_o our_o saviour_n christ_n as_o he_o be_v the_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o he_o be_v the_o general_n of_o that_o host_n the_o head_n of_o that_o body_n the_o king_n of_o that_o kingdom_n the_o shepherd_n of_o that_o flock_n the_o housholder_n of_o that_o family_n and_o the_o pilot_n of_o that_o ship_n as_o may_v these_o title_n be_v ascribe_v unto_o he_o as_o he_o be_v the_o only_a archbishop_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n viz._n that_o he_o be_v the_o only_a general_n of_o this_o host_n the_o only_a head_n of_o this_o body_n the_o only_a king_n of_o this_o kingdom_n the_o only_a shepherd_n of_o this_o flock_n the_o only_a housholder_n of_o this_o family_n and_o the_o only_a pilot_n of_o this_o ship_n or_o that_o the_o say_v unity_n concern_v the_o
universal_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o of_o as_o great_a validity_n to_o prove_v that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v one_o temporal_a king_n under_o he_o to_o govern_v his_o universal_a kingdom_n over_o all_o the_o world_n as_o be_v the_o other_o unity_n touch_v the_o church_n to_o prove_v that_o there_o must_v be_v one_o bishop_n under_o he_o to_o govern_v all_o the_o particular_a church_n in_o the_o world_n or_o that_o because_o king_n when_o they_o have_v occasion_n to_o be_v absent_a from_o their_o kingdom_n do_v common_o appoint_v some_o viceroy_n to_o rule_v their_o people_n until_o their_o return_n it_o thereupon_o follow_v that_o christ_n supply_v his_o corporal_a absence_n from_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n the_o church_n by_o the_o comfortable_a presence_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v of_o necessity_n to_o leave_v one_o carnal_a man_n to_o be_v his_o vicar-general_n over_o his_o say_a spiritual_a kingdom_n or_o that_o see_v our_o saviour_n christ_n hold_v it_o expedient_a for_o his_o catholic_n church_n that_o he_o shall_v deprive_v she_o of_o his_o corporal_a presence_n that_o she_o may_v be_v rule_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v think_v great_a presumption_n for_o any_o man_n to_o tell_v we_o that_o his_o corporal_a presence_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o say_a catholic_n church_n as_o if_o he_o mean_v to_o put_v the_o holy_a ghost_n out_o of_o possession_n or_o that_o either_o the_o say_v one_o universal_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n the_o king_n and_o creator_n of_o it_o be_v otherwise_o visible_a upon_o the_o earth_n than_o by_o the_o particular_a kingdom_n and_o several_a kind_n of_o government_n in_o it_o and_o perhaps_o in_o a_o sort_n and_o by_o representation_n when_o some_o neighbour_n king_n either_o in_o person_n or_o by_o their_o ambassador_n may_v be_v meet_v together_o for_o the_o good_a of_o their_o several_a kingdom_n or_o that_o the_o say_v one_o catholic_n church_n of_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v the_o chief_a bishop_n over_o all_o be_v otherwise_o visible_a on_o the_o earth_n than_o by_o the_o several_a and_o particular_a church_n in_o it_o and_o sometime_o by_o general_n and_o free_a council_n lawful_o assemble_v or_o that_o it_o be_v a_o better_a consequent_a that_o if_o the_o catholic_n church_n have_v no_o visible_a head_n all_o other_o bishop_n doctor_n pastor_n and_o minister_n be_v needless_a than_o if_o one_o shall_v say_v because_o there_o be_v no_o one_o king_n to_o govern_v all_o the_o world_n therefore_o there_o be_v no_o use_n of_o emperor_n king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n or_o civil_a magistrate_n or_o that_o it_o do_v more_o follow_v that_o christ_n shall_v have_v leave_v his_o faithful_a people_n in_o a_o confuse_a anarchy_n except_o he_o have_v leave_v st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n to_o govern_v the_o whole_a church_n than_o it_o do_v that_o the_o whole_a world_n have_v be_v leave_v by_o he_o in_o a_o confusion_n without_o any_o government_n in_o it_o in_o that_o he_o have_v not_o leave_v one_o universal_a emperor_n or_o that_o the_o intolerable_a pride_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o the_o time_n still_o be_v through_o the_o advancement_n of_o himself_o by_o many_o sleight_n stratagem_n and_o false_a miracle_n over_o the_o catholic_n church_n the_o temple_n of_o god_n as_o if_o he_o be_v god_n himself_o do_v not_o argue_v he_o plain_o to_o be_v the_o man_n of_o sin_n mention_v by_o the_o apostle_n or_o that_o every_o national_a church_n plant_v according_a to_o the_o apostle_n platform_n may_v not_o by_o the_o mean_n which_o christ_n have_v ordain_v as_o well_o subsist_v of_o itself_o without_o one_o universal_a bishop_n as_o every_o kingdom_n may_v do_v under_o the_o government_n of_o their_o several_a king_n without_o one_o general_a monarch_n he_o do_v great_o err_v the_o end_n of_o the_o second_o book_n lib_fw-la iii_o cap._n i._n in_o pursue_v our_o intend_a course_n through_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o until_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n we_o overslipt_v and_o pass_v by_o the_o fullness_n of_o that_o time_n wherein_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o maker_n and_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o world_n our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n so_o as_o now_o we_o be_v to_o return_v back_o and_o prosecute_v our_o say_a course_n as_o we_o find_v the_o true_a ground_n thereof_o be_v lay_v down_o confirm_v and_o practise_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n at_o our_o entrance_n into_o which_o course_n we_o confess_v ourselves_o to_o be_v indeed_o great_o astonish_v consider_v the_o strange_a impediment_n and_o mighty_a stumble_a block_n which_o through_o long_a practice_n and_o incredible_a ambition_n be_v cast_v in_o our_o way_n in_o that_o we_o find_v the_o estate_n of_o that_o church_n which_o will_v rule_v over_o all_o to_o be_v degenerate_v in_o our_o day_n as_o far_o in_o effect_n from_o her_o primary_n and_o apostolical_a institution_n and_o rule_n as_o we_o have_v show_v before_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n to_o have_v swerve_v through_o the_o like_a pride_n and_o ambition_n from_o that_o excellent_a condition_n wherein_o she_o be_v first_o establish_v and_o afterward_o preserve_v and_o beautify_v by_o moses_n and_o king_n david_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o most_o worthy_a and_o godly_a successor_n 46._o for_o except_o we_o shall_v condemn_v the_o old_a testament_n as_o many_o ancient_a heretic_n have_v do_v and_o thereupon_o overthrow_v all_o which_o hitherto_o we_o have_v build_v and_o not_o that_o only_a but_o shall_v furthermore_o either_o approve_v of_o their_o gross_a impiety_n who_o read_v the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o if_o they_o be_v falsify_v and_o corrupt_v and_o by_o receive_v and_o reject_v as_o much_o of_o they_o as_o they_o list_v do_v prefer_v before_o they_o as_o not_o contain_v in_o they_o all_o necessary_a truth_n for_o man_n salvation_n certain_a obscure_a and_o apocryphal_a write_n or_o shall_v ourselves_o impious_o imagine_v that_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o now_o we_o have_v it_o be_v but_o a_o rough_a draught_n and_o a_o fit_a project_n compile_v for_o the_o time_n by_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v afterward_o better_o order_v polish_a and_o supply_v with_o certain_a humane_a tradition_n and_o doctrine_n by_o some_o of_o their_o successor_n we_o can_v see_v no_o sufficient_a warrant_n or_o probable_a reason_n why_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v take_v upon_o he_o as_o he_o do_v so_o eminent_a and_o supreme_a authority_n over_o all_o the_o kingdom_n and_o church_n in_o the_o world_n to_o rule_v they_o direct_v they_o bestow_v they_o and_o chap_v and_o change_v they_o under_o pretence_n of_o religion_n as_o he_o from_o time_n to_o time_n shall_v think_v fit_a sure_o we_o be_v if_o the_o scripture_n may_v retain_v their_o ancient_a authority_n and_o continue_v to_o be_v true_a ruler_n and_o principal_a director_n to_o all_o apostolical_a bishop_n that_o in_o they_o there_o will_v not_o be_v find_v any_o shadow_n or_o step_n of_o those_o so_o high_a and_o lofty_a conceit_n to_o the_o proof_n whereof_o before_o we_o address_v ourselves_o we_o have_v think_v it_o very_o expedient_a for_o the_o carriage_n of_o our_o course_n more_o perspicuous_o and_o clear_o to_o make_v it_o apparent_a by_o what_o degree_n and_o practice_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v proceed_v in_o aspire_v to_o that_o sovereignty_n and_o greatness_n which_o now_o they_o have_v attain_v placet_fw-la eye_n john_n overall_n prolocutor_n cap._n ii_o as_o it_o be_v say_v long_o since_o religion_n bring_v forth_o riches_n and_o the_o daughter_n devour_v the_o mother_n so_o may_v it_o very_o true_o be_v say_v in_o these_o day_n the_o empire_n beget_v the_o papacy_n and_o the_o son_n have_v devour_v his_o father_n for_o as_o we_o suppose_v by_o the_o effect_n no_o soon_o do_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n even_o in_o the_o first_o time_n of_o persecution_n get_v any_o rest_n and_o courage_n but_o they_o begin_v to_o think_v with_o themselves_o that_o they_o be_v as_o able_a to_o govern_v all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o empire_n as_o the_o emperor_n themselves_o be_v to_o govern_v all_o the_o kingdom_n and_o nation_n then_o subject_a unto_o they_o and_o that_o rome_n be_v as_o fit_v a_o seat_n for_o such_o a_o bishop_n as_o it_o be_v for_o so_o great_a a_o emperor_n some_o seed_n of_o this_o ambition_n begin_v to_o sprout_v there_o 23._o when_o victor_n presume_v to_o threaten_v the_o greek_a church_n concern_v the_o feast_n of_o easter_n although_o irenaeus_n then_o live_v do_v great_o dislike_v it_o and_o the_o bishop_n of_o asia_n little_o regard_v he_o in_o that_o behalf_n say_v they_o nothing_o care_v for_o such_o his_o threat_n pontif._n and_o it_o be_v not_o we_o suppose_v a_o idle_a conceit_n of_o one_o who_o write_v
chronol_n noluit_fw-la enim_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o he_o will_v not_o endure_v it_o as_o one_o say_v that_o his_o consent_n shall_v be_v require_v in_o the_o election_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n nor_o that_o the_o emperor_n according_a to_o his_o will_n shall_v have_v the_o bestow_n of_o the_o bishopric_n that_o be_v include_v within_o the_o limit_n of_o the_o empire_n sure_o it_o may_v have_v please_v he_o to_o have_v endure_v both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o as_o sundry_a pope_n his_o equal_n have_v do_v before_o he_o and_o howsoever_o this_o attempt_n of_o gregory_n be_v eager_o maintain_v in_o these_o day_n and_o hold_v to_o be_v apostolical_a yet_o than_o it_o seem_v very_o strange_a to_o many_o therefore_o a_o ancient_a historiographer_n write_v in_o this_o sort_n 35._o lego_n &_o relego_fw-la romanorum_fw-la regum_fw-la &_o imperatorum_fw-la gesta_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o read_v over_o and_o over_o again_o the_o act_n of_o the_o roman_a king_n and_o emperor_n but_o can_v find_v in_o no_o place_n that_o any_o of_o they_o before_o henry_n the_o four_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o deprive_v of_o his_o kingdom_n 1._o and_o again_o the_o empire_n be_v the_o more_o vehement_o move_v with_o indignation_n through_o the_o novelty_n of_o this_o attempt_n because_o such_o a_o sentence_n against_o the_o emperor_n of_o rome_n 1088._o be_v never_o hear_v of_o before_o those_o time_n and_o another_o more_o ancient_a than_o the_o former_a 84._o and_o almost_o of_o 500_o year_n stand_v do_v not_o only_o term_v the_o say_a fact_n of_o the_o pope_n a_o novelty_n but_o say_v in_o effect_n that_o it_o be_v a_o heresy_n these_o be_v his_o word_n sure_o this_o novelty_n i_o will_v not_o call_v it_o heresy_n be_v never_o before_o hear_v of_o in_o the_o world_n viz._n that_o priest_n shall_v teach_v the_o people_n that_o they_o owe_v no_o subjection_n unto_o evil_a king_n and_o that_o notwithstanding_o they_o have_v take_v a_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n unto_o they_o yet_o they_o owe_v they_o no_o fidelity_n nor_o be_v to_o be_v account_v perjure_v that_o violate_v the_o say_a oath_n nay_o that_o if_o any_o obey_v their_o king_n in_o that_o case_n he_o shall_v be_v hold_v for_o a_o excommunicate_a person_n and_o he_o that_o attempt_v any_o thing_n against_o such_o a_o king_n shall_v be_v absolve_v both_o from_o the_o offence_n of_o injustice_n and_o of_o perjury_n to_o this_o heretical_a novelty_n uspergen_v and_o most_o insolent_a attempt_n which_o since_o have_v have_v many_o false_a colour_n cast_v over_o it_o 1077._o to_o cover_v the_o lewdness_n and_o deformity_n of_o it_o we_o may_v add_v the_o say_a pope_n very_a admirable_a pride_n 7._o in_o permit_v the_o say_a emperor_n when_o he_o come_v unto_o he_o to_o be_v absolve_v from_o the_o say_a excommunication_n to_o stand_v barefooted_a in_o the_o frost_n and_o snow_n three_o day_n at_o his_o gate_n but_o that_o which_o ensue_v this_o novelty_n or_o heresy_n this_o unpriestly_a and_o inhuman_a deal_n with_o so_o great_a a_o person_n be_v most_o remarkable_a above_o all_o the_o rest_n viz._n how_o he_o wound_v himself_o like_o a_o cunning_a serpent_n into_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o upon_o a_o sleight_n occasion_n the_o say_v rebel_n of_o germany_n in_o their_o fury_n against_o the_o emperor_n have_v suggest_v unto_o he_o 5._o that_o the_o empire_n be_v a_o benefit_n belong_v to_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v bestow_v where_o she_o think_v fit_a although_o they_o add_v therewith_o that_o the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v do_v by_o the_o bishop_n and_o by_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n with_o the_o consent_n of_o other_o prince_n yet_o he_o find_v what_o will_v serve_v his_o turn_n and_o be_v most_o available_a to_o his_o own_o designment_n do_v afterward_o of_o himself_o and_o by_o his_o own_o authority_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o dispose_v of_o the_o empire_n as_o be_v void_a by_o virtue_n of_o a_o second_o excommunication_n and_o do_v according_o send_v a_o crown_n of_o gold_n to_o rodulphus_fw-la duke_n of_o suevia_n now_o also_o grow_v a_o traitor_n with_o this_o inscription_n 1078._o petra_n dedit_fw-la petro_n petrus_n diadema_fw-la rodulpho_n christ_n give_v st._n peter_n authority_n to_o make_v emperor_n and_o i_o his_o successor_n do_v thereupon_o send_v you_o this_o crown_n and_o by_o my_o authority_n from_o st._n peter_n do_v give_v you_o the_o empire_n it_o be_v plain_a and_o evident_a that_o many_o emperor_n in_o former_a age_n bestow_v the_o papacy_n and_o sometime_o take_v it_o from_o one_o and_o give_v it_o to_o another_o but_o that_o ever_o pope_n there_o before_o this_o man_n do_v so_o dispose_v of_o the_o empire_n we_o do_v not_o find_v it_o in_o any_o approve_a author_n neither_o can_v we_o conceive_v or_o easy_o believe_v that_o christ_n ever_o give_v st._n peter_n any_o such_o authority_n as_o be_v here_o dream_v of_o only_o we_o observe_v by_o the_o report_n of_o one_o no_o protestant_a that_o gregory_n 5._o to_o justify_v and_o colour_v his_o say_a presumption_n brag_v above_o measure_n that_o the_o west_n empire_n be_v he_o that_o he_o be_v both_o bishop_n and_o emperor_n christ_n have_v impose_v upon_o he_o those_o two_o person_n that_o he_o have_v no_o equal_a and_o much_o less_o any_o superior_a that_o he_o may_v take_v all_o right_a and_o honour_n from_o other_o man_n and_o transfer_v the_o same_o unto_o himself_o and_o do_v much_o more_o than_o here_o we_o will_v mention_v but_o touch_v any_o proof_n for_o all_o these_o great_a prerogative_n we_o find_v none_o except_o this_o will_v serve_v his_o turn_n that_o st._n peter_n receive_v power_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v which_o we_o hold_v insufficient_a notwithstanding_o that_o the_o papist_n nowadays_o do_v allow_v they_o all_o and_o admire_v he_o for_o it_o it_o have_v be_v a_o usual_a custom_n for_o the_o pope_n friend_n to_o extol_v those_o bishop_n of_o rome_n most_o who_o show_v themselves_o whilst_o they_o live_v the_o great_a practitioner_n and_o traitor_n against_o the_o emperor_n agreeable_o whereunto_o one_o say_v of_o he_o chronol_n that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n worthy_a of_o the_o pontificalship_n because_o he_o depress_v the_o insolency_n of_o politic_n terrify_v monarch_n with_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o name_n and_o zeal_n and_o deliver_v the_o church_n from_o the_o captivity_n and_o servitude_n which_o it_o endure_v under_o prince_n and_o that_o of_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n he_o be_v one_o of_o chief_a zeal_n and_o authority_n and_o a_o man_n verè_fw-la apostolicus_n true_o apostolical_a and_o most_o to_o be_v praise_v proceres_fw-la &_o populum_fw-la sacramento_fw-la praestito_fw-la sanctè_fw-la solvit_fw-la &_o ut_fw-la rodolpho_n adhaereant_fw-la sanctius_fw-la imperat_fw-la he_o do_v godly_a absolve_v the_o nobleman_n and_o people_n from_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n to_o the_o emperor_n and_o do_v more_o holy_o command_v they_o not_o to_o obey_v he_o what_o be_v think_v long_o since_o of_o these_o so_o godly_a and_o holy_a practice_n we_o have_v above_o touch_v and_o we_o must_v also_o of_o necessity_n confess_v that_o to_o be_v true_a which_o this_o author_n and_o his_o fellow_n do_v write_v of_o gregory_n greatness_n for_o it_o be_v further_o record_v of_o he_o that_o he_o do_v first_o erect_v imperium_fw-la pontificium_fw-la 5._o the_o papal_a empire_n but_o touch_v his_o virtue_n if_o a_o ancient_a cardinal_n cardinalis_fw-la that_o write_v his_o life_n do_v know_v he_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o any_o man_n shall_v be_v in_o love_n with_o they_o and_o as_o concern_v this_o new_a and_o before_o unheard_a of_o pontifical_a empire_n suprà_fw-la if_o we_o may_v believe_v another_o of_o their_o own_o author_n it_o bring_v with_o it_o into_o the_o west_n empire_n war_n bloodshed_n homicide_n parricide_n hatred_n whoredom_n theft_n sacrilege_n dissension_n and_o sedition_n both_o civil_a and_o domestical_a corruption_n of_o the_o scripture_n false_a and_o sycophantical_a interpretation_n with_o many_o more_o mischief_n there_o by_o he_o mention_v and_o yet_o say_v he_o gregory_n successor_n do_v uphold_v it_o by_o the_o space_n of_o 450._o year_n invito_fw-la mundo_fw-la invitis_fw-la imperatoribus_fw-la in_o spite_n of_o the_o world_n and_o of_o the_o emperor_n and_o thereby_o draw_v both_o heaven_n and_o hell_n into_o their_o subjecti_fw-la on_o suprà_fw-la and_o servitude_n again_o in_o former_a time_n god_n as_o a_o most_o indulgent_a father_n do_v often_o chastise_v the_o western_a christian_n by_o saxon_n hunns_n norman_n venetian_n lombard_n and_o hungarian_n man_n differ_v from_o we_o in_o religion_n but_o now_o as_o if_o god_n be_v become_v a_o angry_a father_n towards_o we_o and_o we_o be_v neglect_v and_o disinherited_a by_o he_o we_o have_v for_o above_o 400._o year_n tyrannize_v among_o ourselves_o worse_o than_o turk_n we_o deceive_v we_o circumvent_v we_o kill_v we_o turn_v our_o
weapon_n into_o our_o own_o bowel_n we_o be_v leave_v to_o our_o own_o lust_n we_o live_v as_o we_o list_v we_o behave_v ourselves_o proud_o covetous_o without_o punishment_n and_o we_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o give_v god_n the_o lie_n placet_fw-la eye_n john_n overall_n cap._n ix_o it_o be_v impertinent_a to_o our_o purpose_n to_o enter_v into_o any_o particular_a relation_n of_o the_o great_a stir_v and_o trouble_n which_o through_o the_o pride_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n after_o gregory_n the_o seventh_n time_n be_v move_v throughout_o all_o christendom_n during_o the_o say_a term_n above_o mention_v of_o 450._o year_n whilst_o the_o emperor_n with_o their_o adherent_n endeavour_v still_o to_o have_v retain_v their_o ancient_a authority_n both_o in_o the_o choice_n of_o the_o say_a bishop_n and_o of_o bestow_v of_o other_o ecclesiastical_a peferment_n in_o the_o empire_n which_o the_o pope_n with_o their_o friend_n do_v withstand_v with_o all_o their_o might_n and_o possible_a mean_n and_o practice_n that_o they_o can_v devise_v and_o put_v in_o execution_n by_o their_o excommunication_n and_o stir_v up_o the_o emperor_n subject_n to_o rebel_v against_o they_o in_o which_o garboil_n and_o bloody_a opposition_n when_o the_o emperor_n prevail_v the_o pope_n be_v depose_v and_o other_o set_v up_o in_o their_o room_n betwixt_o who_o the_o party_n displace_v to_o recover_v their_o dignity_n and_o the_o other_o possess_v of_o it_o to_o retain_v it_o no_o cruelty_n or_o cunning_a stratagem_n be_v omit_v and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n when_o the_o pope_n get_v the_o upper_a hand_n of_o the_o emperor_n for_o the_o most_o part_n by_o treason_n and_o rebellion_n and_o always_o by_o constraint_n and_o violent_a usurpation_n they_o do_v not_o spare_v to_o use_v they_o most_o dishonourable_o and_o with_o all_o the_o reproach_n and_o contempt_n that_o may_v be_v well_o devise_v some_o example_n whereof_o may_v be_v these_o whereas_o before_o pope_n paschal_n the_o second_v time_n the_o former_a bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v accustom_a to_o add_v the_o year_n of_o the_o emperor_n to_o their_o bull_n epistle_n and_o libel_n 6._o he_o the_o say_v paschal_n a_o little_a after_o gregory_n the_o seventh_n day_n alter_v that_o course_n and_o withdraw_v the_o year_n of_o the_o emperor_n henry_n the_o five_o who_o he_o have_v otherwise_o great_o vex_v add_v the_o number_n of_o his_o own_o papacy_n which_o be_v a_o very_a insolent_a and_o proud_a attempt_n and_o yet_o ever_o since_o for_o aught_o we_o remember_v the_o same_o have_v still_o be_v continue_v by_o all_o his_o successor_n innocentius_n the_o second_o have_v bring_v lotharius_n the_o emperor_n to_o some_o dishonourable_a compact_n and_o condition_n 10._o before_o he_o will_v crown_v he_o 2._o cause_v the_o story_n thereof_o not_o without_o a_o great_a blemish_n to_o the_o imperial_a majesty_n to_o be_v paint_v on_o the_o wall_n of_o his_o palace_n with_o these_o two_o reproachful_a verse_n under_o it_o rex_fw-la venit_fw-la ante_fw-la fores_fw-la jurans_fw-la priùs_fw-la vrbis_fw-la honour_n post_fw-la homo_fw-la fit_a papae_fw-la sumit_fw-la quo_fw-la dante_o coronam_fw-la alexander_n the_o three_o 4._o when_o frederick_n the_o emperor_n be_v drive_v 7._o through_o rebellion_n of_o his_o subject_n to_o come_v unto_o he_o for_o his_o absolution_n set_v his_o foot_n upon_o his_o neck_n and_o apply_v these_o word_n of_o the_o psalm_n unto_o himself_o super_fw-la aspidem_fw-la &_o basiliscum_fw-la ambulabis_fw-la &_o conculcabis_fw-la leonem_fw-la &_o draconem_fw-la it_o be_v report_v of_o caelestinus_n the_o three_o that_o with_o his_o foot_n he_o set_v the_o crown_n upon_o the_o head_n of_o henry_n the_o six_o and_o with_o one_o of_o they_o strike_v it_o off_o again_o show_v thereby_o that_o he_o can_v make_v and_o unmake_v emperor_n at_o his_o pleasure_n but_o we_o will_v omit_v these_o insolent_a fact_n as_o also_o the_o great_a and_o dishonourable_a servitude_n whereunto_o by_o extremity_n they_o bring_v the_o emperor_n 1._o and_o whereof_o the_o pope_n record_n and_o book_n do_v make_v mention_n as_o of_o carry_v up_o their_o first_o dish_n 1._o give_v of_o they_o water_n bear_v up_o their_o train_n lead_v their_o horse_n hold_v their_o stirrup_n and_o kiss_v their_o foot_n and_o will_v apply_v ourselves_o to_o the_o consideration_n of_o their_o divinity_n how_o they_o have_v deal_v with_o the_o scripture_n to_o uphold_v these_o presumption_n and_o apostatical_a and_o no_o way_n apostolical_a sedition_n rebellion_n murder_n and_o treason_n one_o of_o their_o own_o friend_n observe_v how_o short_o after_o gregory_n the_o seventh_n time_n his_o successor_n by_o his_o example_n behave_v themselves_o in_o this_o behalf_n 6._o write_v thus_o the_o most_o holy_a philosophy_n deliver_v from_o heaven_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n they_o make_v apt_a or_o fit_a to_o their_o own_o condition_n by_o their_o interpretation_n they_o compel_v it_o to_o serve_v their_o ambition_n the_o determination_n and_o decree_n of_o christ_n they_o will_v not_o keep_v but_o make_v they_o to_o serve_v their_o own_o humour_n we_o have_v show_v before_o how_o by_o sundry_a council_n it_o be_v decree_v that_o the_o emperor_n shall_v have_v the_o invest_n of_o bishop_n within_o their_o own_o dominion_n urspergen_v and_o paschal_n the_o second_o himself_o yield_v as_o much_o to_o henry_n the_o five_o 6._o be_v then_o present_a but_o after_o his_o departure_n from_o rome_n the_o case_n be_v alter_v for_o than_o he_o can_v affirm_v with_o show_n of_o great_a devotion_n that_o such_o a_o privilege_n be_v against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o another_o bishop_n as_o it_o be_v to_o uphold_v he_o therein_o affirm_v that_o it_o contain_v wickedness_n and_o heresy_n to_o which_o purpose_n we_o suppose_v some_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v notable_o pervert_v 6._o in_o which_o course_n hadrian_n the_o four_o presume_v very_o far_o when_o he_o dare_v write_v thus_o whence_o have_v the_o emperor_n his_o empire_n but_o from_o we_o by_o the_o election_n of_o prince_n he_o have_v the_o name_n of_o king_n by_o our_o consecration_n he_o have_v the_o name_n of_o emperor_n augustus_n and_o caesar_n ergo_fw-la per_fw-la nos_fw-la imperat_fw-la therefore_o he_o reign_v by_o we_o and_o that_o which_o he_o have_v he_o have_v from_o we_o behold_v it_o be_v in_o our_o power_n to_o bestow_v the_o empire_n on_o who_o we_o list_v and_o how_o do_v he_o prove_v all_o this_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n 10._o proptereà_fw-la constituti_fw-la à_fw-la deo_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o be_v to_o that_o end_n say_v he_o place_v by_o god_n over_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n that_o we_o may_v destroy_v and_o pull_v up_o and_o build_v and_o plant_v herein_o innocentius_n the_o three_o likewise_o have_v a_o especial_a gift_n for_o speak_v of_o sylvester_n he_o say_v he_o be_v both_o a_o bishop_n and_o king_n rely_v not_o only_a upon_o the_o scripture_n 16._o where_o christ_n be_v call_v king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n but_o upon_o another_o place_n of_o st._n peter_n you_o be_v a_o choose_a generation_n 9_o and_o royal_a priesthood_n which_o word_n festo_fw-la he_o affirm_v may_v be_v spiritual_o understand_v of_o sylvester_n successor_n 1_o because_o say_v he_o the_o lord_n have_v choose_v they_o to_o be_v both_o priest_n and_o king_n and_o to_o prevent_v a_o objection_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v ask_v where_o it_o may_v be_v find_v that_o the_o lord_n have_v so_o choose_v they_o to_o both_o those_o great_a dignity_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o constantine_n by_o a_o divine_a revelation_n give_v unto_o sylvester_n with_o a_o crown_n of_o gold_n the_o whole_a kingdom_n of_o the_o west_n but_o yet_o he_o have_v some_o better_a proof_n to_o this_o purpose_n for_o whereas_o christ_n say_v unto_o s._n peter_n 4._o duc_n in_o altum_fw-la launch_v out_o into_o the_o deep_a 2._o this_o deep_a say_v innocentius_n be_v rome_n which_o have_v then_o the_o primacy_n and_o principality_n over_o all_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o where_o the_o lord_n say_v launch_v out_o into_o the_o deep_a it_o be_v as_o though_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v vade_fw-la romam_fw-la go_v to_o rome_n the_o seat_n both_o of_o the_o priesthood_n and_o the_o empire_n again_o expound_v these_o word_n who_o be_v a_o faithful_a servant_n and_o wise_a 45._o who_o his_o master_n have_v make_v ruler_n over_o his_o house_n he_o apply_v they_o to_o st._n peter_n and_o therefore_o thus_o testify_v of_o himself_o of_o truth_n i_o be_o appoint_v over_o this_o family_n 2._o but_o who_o be_o i_o to_o sit_v high_a than_o king_n and_o to_o hold_v the_o throne_n of_o glory_n mihi_fw-la namque_fw-la dicitur_fw-la in_o prophetâ_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o to_o i_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o prophet_n 10._o i_o have_v appoint_v thou_o over_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n that_o thou_o may_v pluck_v up_o and_o root_v out_o and_o destroy_v
and_o throw_v down_o and_o build_v and_o plant_v and_o a_o little_a after_o you_o see_v who_o be_v this_o servant_n even_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n the_o successor_n of_o peter_n the_o christ_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o god_n of_o pharaoh_n one_o place_v in_o the_o midst_n betwixt_o god_n and_o man_n short_a of_o god_n but_o beyond_o man_n less_o than_o god_n but_o great_a than_o man._n likewise_o from_o st._n peter_n walk_v on_o the_o water_n 2._o he_o make_v this_o inference_n forasmuch_o say_v he_o as_o many_o water_n be_v many_o people_n and_o the_o congregation_n of_o water_n be_v the_o sea_n in_o that_o st._n peter_n do_v walk_v upon_o the_o water_n of_o the_o sea_n he_o do_v demonstrate_v his_o power_n over_o all_o the_o world_n further_o this_o innocentius_n have_v write_v a_o malapert_a letter_n to_o the_o emperor_n of_o constantinople_n p._n his_o majesty_n in_o answer_n of_o it_o put_v he_o in_o mind_n how_o st._n peter_n command_v all_o man_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o king_n whereunto_o the_o pope_n reply_v say_v that_o st._n peter_n write_v so_o to_o his_o own_o subject_n and_o do_v not_o therein_o include_v himself_o and_o that_o moreover_o he_o may_v not_o only_o have_v remember_v that_o it_o be_v not_o say_v to_o any_o king_n but_o to_o a_o priest_n behold_v i_o have_v place_v thou_o over_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n and_o so_o follow_v the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n but_o likewise_o that_o as_o god_n make_v two_o light_n in_o the_o firmament_n of_o heaven_n a_o great_a and_o a_o less_o the_o one_o for_o the_o day_n the_o other_o for_o the_o night_n so_o for_o the_o firmament_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n he_o make_v two_o dignity_n the_o pontifical_a and_o the_o regal_a the_o pontifical_a resemble_v the_o sun_n which_o be_v the_o great_a light_n and_o the_o regal_a the_o moon_n which_o be_v the_o less_o light_a to_o the_o end_n that_o thereby_o it_o may_v be_v know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n betwixt_o pontifical_a bishop_n and_o king_n as_o there_o be_v betwixt_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o moon_n but_o here_o we_o must_v a_o little_a digress_v johan_n to_o observe_v that_o this_o pope_n be_v swell_v as_o big_a as_o the_o sun_n cast_v his_o beam_n not_o only_o into_o england_n and_o scorch_a king_n john_n exceed_o about_o the_o year_n 1212._o by_o thunder_a against_o he_o uspergensi_fw-la and_o interdict_v the_o kingdom_n and_o by_o exciting_a his_o subject_n to_o rebellion_n and_o treason_n the_o weapon_n of_o those_o bishop_n but_o likewise_o fire_v otho_n the_o emperor_n out_o of_o the_o empire_n chronol_n by_o raise_v up_o against_o he_o frederick_n the_o second_o 3._o and_o when_o he_o have_v play_v these_o two_o feat_n among_o many_o other_o he_o hold_v a_o council_n at_o lateran_n anno_fw-la 1215._o whereinis_fw-la to_o strengthen_v such_o traitorous_a proceed_n he_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v ordain_v as_o it_o be_v pretend_v that_o if_o any_o temporal_a lord_n 1._o be_v admonish_v by_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o purge_v his_o country_n from_o heresy_n the_o metropolitan_a and_o other_o comprovincial_a bishop_n shall_v excommunicate_v he_o and_o if_o within_o a_o year_n he_o do_v not_o give_v satisfaction_n in_o that_o behalf_n the_o same_o shall_v be_v signify_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o so_o he_o from_o thence_o forward_o may_v denounce_v his_o vassal_n absolve_v from_o their_o fidelity_n to_o he_o and_o expose_v his_o land_n to_o catholic_n to_o be_v without_o contradiction_n by_o they_o possess_v upon_o this_o canon_n many_o in_o these_o day_n do_v much_o rely_v although_o indeed_o it_o be_v but_o a_o project_n among_o many_o other_o to_o have_v be_v conclude_v in_o that_o assembly_n wherein_o nothing_o can_v be_v clear_o determine_v say_v one_o of_o their_o writer_n because_o by_o war_n it_o be_v break_v off_o 3._o which_o the_o pope_n labour_v to_o suppress_v die_v in_o that_o journey_n and_o now_o we_o return_v from_o whence_o we_o digress_v and_o leave_v innocentius_n do_v address_v ourselves_o to_o boniface_n the_o eight_o who_o have_v as_o great_a dexterity_n as_o his_o say_a predecessor_n in_o expound_v of_o the_o scripture_n for_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n upon_o a_o mistake_n of_o christ_n meaning_n sanctam_fw-la where_o he_o bid_v they_o to_o provide_v bag_n and_o scrip_n for_o themselves_o and_o that_o he_o who_o want_v a_o sword_n shall_v sell_v his_o coat_n 38._o and_o buy_v one_o they_o answer_v say_v lord_n we_o have_v two_o sword_n this_o pope_n infer_v there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n a_o spiritual_a sword_n and_o a_o temporal_a and_o that_o consequent_o they_o be_v both_o at_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n also_o to_o make_v the_o matter_n more_o clear_a touch_v the_o temporal_a sword_n which_o shall_v rule_v the_o world_n in_o all_o temporal_a cause_n he_o say_v boniface_n that_o shall_v deny_v that_o st._n peter_n have_v this_o temporal_a sword_n do_v not_o well_o understand_v christ_n word_n when_o he_o bid_v st._n peter_n after_o he_o have_v cut_v off_o malchus_n ear_n that_o he_o shall_v put_v up_o his_o sword_n 15._o again_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n do_v teach_v we_o that_o the_o spiritual_a man_n judge_v all_o thing_n but_o be_v judge_v by_o none_o this_o good_a bishop_n do_v engross_v these_o word_n to_o the_o only_a use_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o thereupon_o conclude_v that_o they_o have_v power_n to_o judge_v and_o censure_v all_o earthly_a power_n and_o authority_n but_o be_v themselves_o exempt_v from_o the_o check_n and_o censure_n of_o any_o as_o be_v only_a subject_n to_o god_n and_o to_o his_o judgement_n and_o again_o that_o the_o spiritual_a authority_n may_v institute_v and_o judge_v the_o terrestrial_a it_o be_v verify_v by_o the_o prophecy_n of_o jeremy_n behold_v i_o have_v place_v thou_o this_o day_n over_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n for_o the_o pervert_n of_o which_o portion_n of_o scripture_n both_o this_o pope_n and_o innocentius_n the_o three_o with_o all_o the_o pope_n that_o since_o have_v follow_v be_v and_o be_v much_o behold_v to_o adrian_n the_o four_o 6._o he_o be_v the_o first_o for_o aught_o we_o find_v that_o so_o do_v overstrain_v it_o last_o that_o he_o may_v imitate_v as_o he_o seem_v the_o governor_n of_o the_o feast_n in_o the_o gospel_n 2._o that_o bring_v forth_o his_o best_a wine_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o feast_n and_o likewise_o such_o skilful_a rhetorician_n as_o common_o build_v their_o principal_a conclusion_n upon_o their_o most_o pinch_a argument_n his_o holiness_n rely_v upon_o the_o scripture_n 1._o because_o it_o be_v not_o say_v in_o the_o beginning_n but_o in_o the_o beginning_n god_n make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n therefore_o except_o we_o will_v say_v with_o the_o manichce_n that_o god_n do_v not_o himself_o make_v all_o thing_n but_o that_o there_o be_v also_o another_o creator_n as_o well_o as_o he_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v confess_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o viz._n st._n peter_n successor_n that_o be_v the_o chief_a and_o principal_a ruler_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o so_o he_o come_v to_o his_o irrefragable_a conclusion_n we_o declare_v we_o define_v and_o we_o pronounce_v that_o it_o be_v of_o the_o necessity_n of_o salvation_n for_o all_o humane_a creature_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n we_o may_v not_o therefore_o marvel_v that_o have_v thus_o notable_o make_v perfect_a the_o rough_a platform_n draw_v out_o by_o gregory_n the_o viith_o rub_v over_o by_o hadrian_n the_o ivth_o and_o amend_v by_o innocentius_n the_o iiid_n of_o so_o infinite_a a_o sovereignty_n if_o he_o the_o say_v boniface_n to_o make_v the_o honour_n and_o glory_n more_o conspicuous_a and_o memorable_a to_o all_o posterity_n after_o he_o have_v thrice_o refuse_v to_o yield_v the_o crown_n of_o the_o empire_n to_o albertus_n austriacus_n come_v forth_o one_o day_n among_o the_o people_n to_o be_v admire_v of_o they_o with_o a_o sword_n by_o his_o side_n 18._o and_o a_o crown_n upon_o his_o head_n say_v that_o he_o and_o none_o but_o he_o be_v caesar_n augustus_n emperor_n and_o lord_n of_o the_o world_n it_o have_v be_v plain_a deal_n if_o for_o the_o better_a strengthen_n of_o this_o his_o greatness_n he_o have_v allege_v the_o word_n in_o the_o gospel_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o his_o lord_n paramount_n 9_o all_o these_o will_v i_o give_v thou_o because_o he_o do_v so_o worthy_o by_o his_o say_a proceed_n magnify_v his_o name_n and_o authority_n placet_fw-la eye_n john_n overall_n cap._n x._o we_o have_v hitherto_o follow_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n through_o many_o wind_n from_o their_o mean_a and_o militant_a condition_n like_v to_o their_o brethren_n unto_o their_o glorious_a estate_n and_o as_o we_o may_v say_v triumphant_a we_o find_v they_o at_o the_o first_o little_o better_a than_o their_o master_n who_o
have_v not_o a_o place_n where_o to_o lay_v his_o head_n but_o now_o they_o be_v as_o we_o see_v become_v caesar_n emperor_n and_o lord_n of_o all_o the_o world_n it_o be_v long_o since_o say_v by_o a_o good_a friend_n of_o that_o see_v miss_z excellentia_fw-la romani_fw-la imperii_fw-la extulit_fw-la papatum_fw-la romani_fw-la pontisicis_fw-la supra_fw-la alius_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la the_o excellency_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n do_v lift_v up_o the_o papacy_n above_o other_o church_n eusebio_n which_o exaltation_n and_o advancement_n of_o those_o bishop_n he_o may_v well_o have_v add_v have_v be_v as_o elsewhere_o we_o have_v say_v the_o very_a bane_n and_o cankerworm_n of_o the_o empire_n itself_o by_o their_o suck_v out_o of_o it_o for_o the_o strengthen_n of_o themselves_o the_o juice_n and_o those_o vital_a spirit_n whereby_o former_o the_o vigour_n and_o glory_n of_o it_o do_v subsist_v and_o all_o by_o rebellion_n and_o treason_n under_o the_o pretence_n of_o religion_n and_o through_o their_o false_a gloss_n application_n and_o violent_a enforcement_n to_o a_o wrong_a sense_n of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n wherein_o although_o they_o have_v a_o especial_a faculty_n yet_o they_o can_v never_o have_v so_o great_o prevail_v as_o they_o do_v against_o such_o a_o estate_n as_o the_o empire_n be_v nor_o against_o so_o many_o great_a king_n and_o other_o prince_n that_o be_v not_o subject_a unto_o it_o if_o they_o have_v not_o be_v uphold_v in_o all_o their_o say_a wicked_a course_n by_o sundry_a their_o flatterer_n and_o parasite_n who_o imitate_v their_o example_n in_o pervert_v and_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n do_v take_v upon_o they_o to_o make_v good_a and_o to_o justify_v whatsoever_o the_o say_v pope_n have_v either_o do_v or_o say_v be_v it_o never_o so_o impious_a treacherous_a or_o traitorous_a as_o by_o that_o which_o follow_v it_o will_v plain_o appear_v about_o the_o year_n 1140_o chronol_n which_o be_v upon_o the_o point_n of_o fifty_o eight_o year_n after_o gregory_n the_o seventh_n death_n theologia_n scholastica_fw-la sive_fw-la disputatrix_fw-la the_o scholastical_a or_o brabble_a divinity_n as_o one_o call_v it_o begin_v to_o peep_v into_o the_o world_n when_o peter_n lombard_n write_v his_o book_n of_o distinction_n 6._o and_o do_v not_o only_a himself_o thereby_o trouble_v the_o truth_n as_o another_o say_v with_o the_o mudd_n of_o question_n and_o stream_n of_o opinion_n but_o also_o set_v many_o man_n after_o he_o on_o work_n in_o write_v long_a commentary_n upon_o his_o say_a distinction_n to_o the_o hatch_n of_o infinite_a opposition_n and_o difficult_a perplexity_n in_o which_o number_n thomas_n of_o aquine_n bear_v the_o great_a sway_n who_o enter_v into_o this_o course_n about_o forty_o year_n after_o innocentius_n the_o three_o day_n and_o find_v how_o gregory_n the_o seven_o paschal_n the_o second_o innocentius_n the_o second_o adrian_z the_o four_o alexander_n the_o three_o and_o the_o say_v innocentius_n the_o three_o with_o divers_a other_o pope_n have_v ruffle_v with_o the_o emperor_n and_o what_o a_o hand_n they_o have_v get_v over_o the_o scripture_n become_v the_o chief_a champion_n of_o a_o schoolman_n that_o rome_n ever_o have_v 16._o out_o of_o these_o word_n 10._o of_o his_o fullness_n we_o have_v all_o receive_v he_o be_v able_a to_o collect_v that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o fullness_n of_o all_o grace_n again_o because_o christ_n who_o he_o make_v bishop_n of_o rome_n may_v be_v call_v as_o he_o say_v a_o king_n and_o a_o priest_n he_o therefore_o infer_v it_o not_o to_o be_v inconvenient_a that_o his_o successor_n shall_v be_v so_o style_v also_o we_o know_v not_o how_o but_o he_o have_v find_v it_o out_o that_o when_o god_n say_v to_o jeremy_n i_o have_v set_v thou_o over_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n 19_o he_o speak_v so_o unto_o he_o in_o personâ_fw-la vicarii_fw-la christi_fw-la in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n vicar_n furthermore_o in_o that_o aristotle_n say_v that_o the_o body_n have_v his_o virtue_n and_o operation_n by_o the_o soul_n he_o suppose_v it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o prince_n have_v she_o be_v virtue_n and_o operation_n from_o st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n for_o further_a proof_n whereof_o as_o fear_v it_o will_v be_v think_v insufficient_a that_o he_o have_v say_v before_o he_o buckle_v himself_o to_o certain_a fact_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o emperor_n say_v that_o constantine_n do_v give_v the_o empire_n to_o sylvester_n that_o pope_n adrian_n make_v charles_n the_o great_a emperor_n and_o that_o likewise_o otho_n the_o first_o be_v create_v emperor_n by_o pope_n leo_n but_o at_o the_o last_o he_o striketh_z this_o point_n dead_a because_o say_v he_o it_o be_v manifest_v that_o pope_n zachary_n depose_v the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o absolve_v all_o his_o baron_n from_o their_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n that_o innocentius_n the_o three_o take_v the_o empire_n from_o otho_n the_o iv_o the_o and_o that_o honorius_n his_o next_o successor_n deal_v in_o like_a sort_n with_o frederick_n the_o second_o and_o as_o it_o be_v to_o make_v up_o all_o speak_v of_o the_o emperor_n crown_n and_o the_o custom_n as_o it_o seem_v then_o in_o use_n he_o say_v that_o the_o emperor_n do_v receive_v a_o crown_n of_o gold_n from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n deliver_v it_o to_o he_o with_o his_o foot_n 20_o in_o signum_fw-la subjectionis_fw-la suae_fw-la &_o fidelitatis_fw-la ad_fw-la romanam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la thereby_o to_o teach_v he_o his_o subjection_n and_o loyalty_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o hitherto_o we_o have_v hear_v this_o great_a schoolman_n by_o way_n of_o discourse_n wherein_o peradventure_o he_o be_v more_o remiss_a and_o dissolute_a than_o when_o he_o press_v his_o point_n logical_o as_o the_o manner_n be_v in_o the_o school_n we_o will_v therefore_o trace_v he_o a_o little_a in_o that_o path_n if_o first_o we_o shall_v observe_v that_o it_o be_v his_o custom_n when_o he_o handle_v a_o question_n that_o do_v concern_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v propound_v it_o he_o first_o proceed_v with_o his_o videtur_fw-la quòd_fw-la non_fw-la and_o bring_v sometime_o both_o scripture_n and_o father_n for_o the_o negative_a part_n his_o purpose_n still_o be_v to_o encounter_v they_o with_o he_o sed_fw-la contrà_fw-la est_fw-la but_o such_o or_o such_o a_o pope_n hold_v the_o contrary_a and_o then_o he_o come_v in_o first_o with_o his_o conclusion_n and_o second_o with_o his_o dicendum_fw-la est_fw-la wherein_o he_o so_o labour_v and_o bestir_v himself_o as_o that_o always_o the_o say_a scripture_n and_o father_n be_v wring_v and_o enforce_v to_o yield_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o for_o example_n have_v propound_v this_o question_n whether_o for_o apostasy_n from_o the_o faith_n a_o prince_n do_v lose_v his_o dominion_n over_o his_o subject_n 2._o and_o so_o consequent_o if_o he_o be_v excommunicate_v there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n for_o the_o one_o as_o there_o be_v for_o the_o other_o as_o two_o great_a cardinal_n do_v affirm_v he_o fall_v upon_o his_o videtur_fw-la toledo_n say_v alanus_n it_o seem_v that_o a_o prince_n for_o apostasy_n from_o the_o faith_n do_v not_o lose_v his_o dominion_n over_o his_o subject_n but_o that_o they_o be_v still_o bind_v to_o obey_v he_o for_o st._n ambrose_n say_v that_o julian_n the_o emperor_n though_o he_o be_v a_o apostata_fw-la yet_o have_v under_o he_o christian_a soldier_n to_o who_o when_o he_o say_v bring_v forth_o your_o army_n for_o defence_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n they_o obey_v he_o therefore_o for_o the_o apostasy_n of_o the_o prince_n their_o subject_n be_v not_o absolve_v from_o his_o dominion_n moreover_o a_o apostata_fw-la from_o the_o faith_n be_v a_o infidel_n but_o some_o holy_a man_n be_v find_v faithful_o to_o have_v serve_v infidel-master_n as_o joseph_n do_v pharaoh_n daniel_n nabuchadnezzar_n and_o mardochee_n assuerus_n therefore_o for_o apostasy_n from_o the_o faith_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v yield_v but_o that_o such_o a_o prince_n must_v be_v obey_v by_o his_o subject_n sed_fw-la contra_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la gregorius_n septimus_fw-la dicit_fw-la but_o gregory_n the_o seven_o be_v of_o a_o contrary_a opinion_n where_o he_o say_v we_o keep_v the_o statute_n of_o our_o holy_a predecessor_n do_v by_o our_o apostolic_a authority_n absolve_v from_o their_o oath_n those_o who_o be_v bind_v to_o excommunicate_a person_n by_o fealty_n or_o the_o sacrament_n of_o a_o oath_n and_o do_v by_o all_o mean_n prohibit_v they_o that_o they_o keep_v not_o their_o fidelity_n unto_o they_o until_o they_o come_v to_o satisfaction_n whereupon_o thomas_n conclude_v that_o all_o apostata_n be_v excommunicate_v sicut_fw-la &_o haeretici_fw-la as_o all_o heretic_n be_v and_o that_o therefore_o their_o subject_n be_v deliver_v from_o their_o obedience_n and_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n unto_o
to_o gregory_n the_o seventh_n day_n also_o a_o huge_a heap_n of_o the_o pope_n bull_n from_o the_o say_v gregory_n time_n to_o pius_fw-la quintus_fw-la and_o last_o no_o short_a sum_n of_o papal_a constitution_n set_v forth_o a_o little_a before_o the_o say_v seven_o book_n of_o the_o decretal_n so_o as_o all_o these_o volume_n be_v put_v together_o they_o exceed_v as_o far_o the_o body_n of_o the_o civil_a law_n as_o the_o usurp_a dignity_n of_o the_o papacy_n exceed_v the_o mean_a estate_n of_o the_o empire_n placet_fw-la eye_n john_n overall_n cap._n xii_o we_o have_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n make_v mention_v of_o the_o new_a and_o late_a sort_n of_o decretal_n bull_n and_o constitution_n not_o know_v what_o credit_n the_o pope_n will_v bestow_v upon_o they_o hereafter_o and_o therefore_o leave_v they_o to_o their_o chance_n we_o have_v think_v it_o expedient_a to_o return_v to_o the_o ancient_a canon-law_n revive_v and_o approve_v not_o long_o since_o by_o gregory_n the_o thirteen_o where_o we_o find_v a_o new_a ocean_n of_o question_n disputation_n quarrel_n and_o brabblement_n for_o as_o it_o happen_v with_o the_o civil-law_n that_o it_o no_o soon_o be_v again_o renew_v and_o restore_v by_o lotharius_n chron._n but_o sundry_a great_a doctor_n begin_v to_o write_v many_o book_n and_o commentary_n upon_o it_o to_o explain_v it_o and_o to_o discuss_v the_o difficulty_n which_o do_v arise_v in_o it_o so_o fall_v it_o out_o with_o the_o canon-law_n the_o number_n be_v almost_o infinite_a of_o glossographer_n that_o make_v short_a note_n upon_o it_o and_o of_o canonist_n who_o set_v forth_o large_a discourse_n for_o the_o salve_v of_o contradiction_n and_o many_o other_o absurdity_n among_o all_o which_o lawyer_n doctor_n glossographer_n and_o canonist_n assist_v as_o every_o man_n fancy_n lead_v he_o with_o many_o schoolman_n and_o sundry_a divine_n such_o as_o they_o be_v there_o do_v short_o after_o grow_v many_o great_a controversy_n and_o endless_a opposition_n the_o civilian_n of_o italy_n perceive_v by_o the_o body_n of_o the_o civil_a law_n how_o far_o the_o empire_n be_v deject_v from_o that_o royal_a estate_n and_o majesty_n which_o once_o it_o enjoy_v and_o find_v also_o that_o many_o of_o the_o best_a reason_n in_o their_o judgement_n which_o the_o pope_n the_o canon-law_n the_o glossographer_n the_o canonist_n the_o schoolman_n and_o many_o more_o have_v bring_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n ought_v to_o have_v jurisdiction_n over_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n as_o that_o bee_n have_v a_o captain_n that_o beast_n a_o leader_n that_o one_o be_v fit_a to_o end_v controversy_n that_o a_o monarchy_n be_v the_o best_a form_n of_o government_n novit_n and_o that_o one_o must_v he_o over_o all_o to_o receive_v appeal_n to_o give_v direction_n unto_o all_o to_o punish_v all_o rebellious_a person_n and_o many_o such_o like_a be_v full_o as_o forcible_a and_o strong_a to_o prove_v that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v one_o emperor_n over_o all_o the_o world_n they_o do_v very_o stiff_o and_o resolute_o insist_v upon_o that_o point_n and_o go_v so_o roundly_o to_o work_v in_o it_o by_o force_n of_o the_o say_a reason_n and_o with_o many_o other_o argument_n that_o some_o of_o they_o will_v needs_o have_v it_o heresy_n for_o any_o man_n to_o hold_v the_o contrary_a allege_v a_o text_n for_o their_o purpose_n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o in_o those_o day_n there_o come_v a_o commandment_n from_o augustus_n caesar_n 1._o that_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v tax_v against_o those_o italian_a civilian_n vltramontane_n 21._o the_o civilian_n on_o this_o side_n the_o alps_n frenchman_n spaniard_n and_o of_o other_o country_n oppose_v themselves_o with_o all_o their_o force_n not_o in_o any_o dislike_n of_o the_o honour_n due_a to_o the_o emperor_n but_o because_o otherwise_o their_o master_n the_o king_n of_o france_n of_o spain_n and_o of_o divers_a other_o kingdom_n who_o have_v free_v themselves_o long_o before_o from_o the_o empire_n shall_v be_v bring_v again_o the_o jure_fw-la at_o the_o least_o by_o the_o foresay_a reason_n to_o be_v subject_a unto_o it_o whereupon_o in_o confutation_n of_o they_o and_o to_o strengthen_v their_o own_o assertion_n they_o allege_v that_o one_o bee_n be_v never_o the_o captain_n over_o all_o bee_n nor_o one_o crane_n the_o general_n of_o all_o crane_n nor_o one_o beast_n the_o leader_n of_o all_o beast_n that_o it_o be_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o the_o law_n of_o nation_n that_o there_o be_v never_o any_o monarch_n so_o great_a but_o there_o be_v in_o the_o world_n many_o king_n who_o be_v never_o subject_a unto_o they_o that_o the_o place_n of_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o all_o place_n in_o the_o world_n that_o be_v then_o under_o the_o roman_n and_o aught_o to_o be_v extend_v no_o further_o that_o a_o monarchy_n be_v then_o best_a when_o it_o be_v contain_v within_o such_o limit_n as_o it_o may_v well_o be_v govern_v that_o all_o monarchy_n hitherto_o have_v ever_o their_o bound_n which_o be_v well_o know_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o all_o man_n to_o fetch_v justice_n from_o one_o place_n or_o to_o receive_v thence_o any_o benefit_n by_o their_o appeal_n and_o so_o after_o many_o other_o such_o argument_n they_o do_v conclude_v that_o to_o think_v that_o the_o emperor_n ought_v to_o have_v the_o government_n of_o all_o the_o world_n be_v a_o vain_a a_o absurd_a and_o a_o untrue_a conceit_n now_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v how_o in_o all_o these_o trouble_a disputation_n and_o opposition_n the_o glossographer_n canonist_n schoolman_n and_o parasitical_a divine_n that_o be_v swear_v to_o the_o pope_n behave_v themselves_o as_o soon_o as_o the_o civil_a law_n begin_v to_o flourish_v as_o be_v read_v by_o the_o emperor_n commandment_n in_o sundry_a university_n gregory_n the_o nine_o chron._n begin_v to_o smell_v what_o be_v like_a to_o come_v of_o it_o and_o therefore_o do_v afterward_o forbid_v it_o to_o be_v read_v in_o paris_n chronol_n be_v the_o especial_a place_n then_o as_o it_o seem_v where_o it_o be_v most_o esteem_v but_o as_o touch_v the_o point_n so_o controvert_v when_o these_o champion_n of_o the_o pope_n see_v how_o the_o matter_n go_v that_o either_o they_o must_v hold_v that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v but_o one_o emperor_n over_o all_o the_o kingdom_n in_o the_o world_n or_o else_o be_v force_v to_o confess_v that_o there_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v one_o pope_n over_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n the_o same_o reason_n be_v as_o pregnant_a for_o the_o one_o as_o for_o the_o other_o they_o join_v with_o the_o italian_a civilian_n suprà_fw-la that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v but_o one_o emperor_n marry_o how_o forsooth_o remember_v gregory_n the_o seven_o adrian_n the_o four_o innocentius_n the_o three_o and_o that_o great_a augustus_n caesar_n boniface_n the_o eight_o and_o divers_a other_o pope_n how_o emperour-like_a they_o have_v demean_v themselves_o and_o what_o great_a authority_n they_o challenge_v the_o say_v pontifical_a champion_n fall_v to_o this_o issue_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v christ_n vicar_n who_o be_v lord_n of_o lord_n and_o king_n of_o king_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v likewise_o that_o one_o emperor_n who_o be_v to_o govern_v all_o the_o world_n in_o temporal_a cause_n as_o he_o do_v all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n and_o thereupon_o they_o reason_v in_o this_o sort_n christ_n be_v lord_n of_o all_o the_o world_n but_o the_o pope_n be_v christ_n vicar_n on_o earth_n therefore_o the_o pope_n be_v lord_n of_o all_o the_o world_n again_o the_o emperor_n be_v the_o pope_n vicar_n and_o his_o successor_n in_o all_o temporal_a cause_n therefore_o the_o emperor_n be_v lord_n of_o all_o the_o world_n all_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n be_v habitual_o in_o the_o pope_n and_o from_o he_o derive_v to_o the_o emperor_n and_o many_o of_o the_o italian_a lawyer_n especial_o such_o as_o mix_v their_o study_n with_o the_o canon-law_n be_v well_o enough_o content_a that_o so_o as_o the_o emperor_n may_v be_v lord_n of_o all_o how_o and_o whence_o he_o have_v it_o whether_o from_o god_n or_o from_o the_o pope_n they_o stand_v indifferent_a but_o for_o all_o this_o the_o french_a and_o spanish_a lawyer_n stick_v to_o their_o tackle_n and_o be_v peremptory_a that_o neither_o the_o pope_n nor_o the_o emperor_n have_v any_o such_o universal_a dominion_n over_o all_o the_o world_n and_o divers_a likewise_o of_o the_o say_v italian_a doctor_n that_o be_v not_o too_o much_o addict_v to_o the_o canon-law_n be_v not_o afraid_a to_o hold_v and_o maintain_v that_o the_o emperor_n hold_v as_o well_o from_o god_n the_o authority_n which_o he_o have_v as_o the_o pope_n do_v his_o papacy_n howbeit_o such_o be_v the_o
bishop_n of_o that_o see_v affirm_v that_o they_o seek_v the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o to_o bring_v all_o man_n in_o servitude_n under_o they_o to_o the_o end_n that_o they_o themselves_o may_v thereby_o be_v the_o more_o fear_v and_o reverence_v than_o almighty_a god_n 3._o but_o the_o archbishop_n of_o juvavia_n now_o call_v saltzburg_n 3._o in_o a_o oration_n which_o he_o make_v in_o a_o council_n of_o state_n during_o the_o say_a emperor_n reign_n 〈◊〉_d this_o argument_n where_o he_o affirm_v that_o 〈…〉_z libidine_fw-la dominandi_fw-la do_v trouble_v the_o whole_a world_n audendo_fw-la fallendo_fw-la &_o bella_fw-la ex_fw-la bellis_fw-la serendo_fw-la also_o otho_n regulus_n boiorum_fw-la ibidem_fw-la the_o prince_n of_o bavaria_n in_o the_o day_n of_o innocentius_n the_o four_o tell_v the_o bishop_n that_o join_v with_o the_o pope_n that_o as_o they_o grow_v to_o their_o greatness_n by_o discord_n so_o be_v overcome_v with_o desire_n of_o honour_n in_o stir_v up_o war_n they_o be_v worse_o than_o turk_n or_o saracen_n moreover_o in_o the_o day_n of_o honorius_n the_o four_o ibidem_fw-la the_o bishop_n of_o tulle_n when_o the_o pope_n will_v have_v set_v the_o emperor_n in_o war_n against_o the_o french_a and_o under_o that_o pretence_n require_v by_o his_o legate_n of_o all_o the_o clergy_n in_o germany_n non_fw-la decimas_fw-la sed_fw-la quartas_fw-la not_o the_o ten_o but_o the_o four_o part_n of_o their_o live_n move_v the_o say_a clergy_n and_o many_o of_o the_o state_n then_o present_a that_o they_o shall_v no_o long_o submit_v themselves_o unto_o the_o romish_a vulture_n who_o have_v very_o long_o tyrannize_v and_o labour_v nothing_o more_o than_o to_o thrust_v prince_n into_o war_n one_o against_o another_o add_v thereunto_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v arm_v the_o scythian_n arabian_n and_o turk_n against_o they_o and_o that_o he_o very_o think_v that_o the_o pope_n love_v they_o better_o than_o he_o do_v the_o german_n and_o what_o man_n think_v suprà_fw-la when_o they_o dare_v speak_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o his_o priest_n in_o the_o day_n of_o nicholas_n the_o four_o it_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o a_o nobleman_n one_o menardus_n earl_n of_o tyrol_n as_o we_o conceive_v when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o will_v never_o make_v himself_o a_o scorn_n to_o such_o effeminate_a antichrist_n and_o prodigious_a eunuch_n who_o be_v indeed_o say_v he_o our_o servant_n do_v sight_n for_o superiority_n and_o will_v domineer_v over_o we_o that_o be_v their_o lord_n they_o be_v worse_o than_o turk_n saracen_n tartar_n and_o jew_n and_o do_v more_o injury_n to_o christian_a simplicity_n dominationem_fw-la arripiunt_fw-la berbenburg_n they_o will_v by_o force_n over-rule_v all_o in_o the_o time_n of_o ludovicus_n bavarus_n the_o emperor_n although_o three_o pope_n successive_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o he_o with_o all_o the_o mischievous_a practice_n that_o they_o can_v devise_v fraxin_n yet_o many_o learned_a man_n hangenor_n both_o divine_n and_o civil_a lawyer_n do_v justify_v the_o emperor_n proceed_n and_o condemn_v the_o pope_n aligerius_n and_o some_o write_v book_n to_o that_o effect_n say_v to_o the_o emperor_n ockam_n tu_fw-la nos_fw-la pugnis_fw-la ense_fw-mi ferro_fw-la etc._n etc._n do_v thou_o deliver_v we_o from_o the_o pope_n servitude_n by_o force_n gratiae_n etc._n etc._n nos_fw-la te_fw-la lingua_fw-la caesenas_n etc._n etc._n and_o we_o will_v revenge_v our_o quarrel_n patavin_n with_o our_o tongue_n our_o pen_n our_o letter_n our_o stile_n our_o book_n and_o word_n 7._o and_o thereupon_o according_o as_o their_o own_o author_n say_v they_o prove_v by_o the_o testimony_n both_o of_o divine_a and_o humane_a law_n joannem_fw-la libidine_fw-la dominandi_fw-la insanire_fw-la that_o john_n the_o pope_n be_v grow_v mad_a through_o his_o desire_n of_o principality_n and_o sovereignty_n also_o the_o emperor_n himself_o ibidem_fw-la about_o the_o year_n 1324._o speak_v in_o scorn_n of_o the_o say_v john_n the_o 22_o the_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n in_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v both_o augustus_n and_o pontifex_n show_v himself_o therein_o to_o be_v monstrum_fw-la biceps_fw-la a_o monster_n with_o two_o head_n and_o that_o it_o be_v apparent_a by_o divinity_n and_o all_o law_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o interest_n to_o both_o these_o dignity_n many_o notable_a thing_n be_v contain_v in_o divers_a of_o this_o emperor_n letter_n and_o decree_n as_o also_o in_o the_o say_a oration_n and_o write_n above_o here_o mention_v which_o be_v very_o worthy_a to_o be_v peruse_v and_o make_v more_o know_v than_o they_o be_v all_o of_o they_o labour_v to_o suppress_v that_o insolency_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o the_o right_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o the_o authority_n to_o confirm_v the_o same_o as_o they_o think_v good_a make_v the_o emperor_n thereby_o their_o vicar_n or_o substitute_n but_o it_o be_v most_o of_o all_o worthy_a the_o diligent_a observation_n that_o in_o these_o late_a time_n when_o the_o grossness_n of_o popery_n have_v be_v more_o thorough_o look_v into_o and_o scan_v the_o jesuit_n themselves_o be_v grow_v to_o be_v ashamed_a of_o the_o say_v most_o absurd_a and_o ridiculous_a challenge_n and_o therefore_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n have_v write_v five_o chapter_n against_o it_o rom._n wherein_o he_o first_o distinguish_v they_o from_o catholic_n divine_v 1._o who_o maintain_v that_o opinion_n and_o then_o set_v down_o these_o three_o proposition_n 2._o as_o sure_a ground_n of_o truth_n 3._o viz._n papam_fw-la non_fw-la esse_fw-la dominum_fw-la totius_fw-la mundi_fw-la 4._o that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o lord_n of_o all_o the_o world_n papam_fw-la non_fw-la esse_fw-la dominum_fw-la totius_fw-la mundi_fw-la christiani_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o lord_n of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n papam_fw-la non_fw-la habere_fw-la ullam_fw-la temporalem_fw-la jurisdictionem_fw-la directè_fw-la that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n direct_o 5._o he_o confute_v their_o argument_n who_o be_v of_o another_o judgement_n where_o he_o shake_v off_o very_o light_o the_o chief_a place_n of_o scripture_n and_o some_o other_o testimony_n whereupon_o the_o say_a argument_n be_v principal_o ground_v as_o that_o of_o two_o sword_n and_o where_o christ_n say_v all_o power_n be_v give_v unto_o i_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o the_o testimony_n likewise_o of_o pope_n nicholas_n affirm_v that_o christ_n commit_v to_o peter_n the_o key-carrier_n of_o eternal_a life_n terreni_fw-la simul_fw-la &_o coelestibus_fw-la imperii_fw-la jura_n the_o interest_n both_o of_o the_o earthly_a and_o heavenly_a empire_n which_o he_o cast_v away_o either_o as_o a_o assertion_n forge_v by_o gratian_n the_o same_o be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o say_v pope_n write_n or_o else_o to_o have_v another_o sense_n this_o as_o it_o be_v urge_v be_v against_o the_o say_a pope_n direct_a word_n in_o one_o of_o his_o epistle_n his_o first_o proposition_n 2._o that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o lord_n of_o all_o the_o world_n he_o justify_v in_o respect_n 1._o that_o infidel_n be_v not_o his_o sheep_n 2._o that_o he_o can_v judge_v infidel_n 3._o that_o prince_n infidel_n be_v true_a and_o supreme_a prince_n of_o their_o kingdom_n because_o dominion_n be_v neither_o found_v in_o grace_n nor_o faith_n as_o it_o appear_v because_o god_n approve_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o gentile_n both_o in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o upon_o these_o say_a reason_n he_o infer_v it_o to_o be_v a_o ridiculous_a conceit_n for_o any_o man_n to_o think_v that_o god_n give_v to_o the_o pope_n any_o right_n over_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n consider_v that_o he_o never_o give_v unto_o he_o ability_n to_o use_v any_o such_o right_n and_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o his_o second_o proposition_n 3._o that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o lord_n of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n he_o prove_v the_o same_o by_o these_o reason_n 1._o because_o if_o he_o have_v any_o such_o dominion_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n the_o same_o aught_o to_o appear_v either_o in_o the_o scripture_n or_o by_o some_o apostolical_a tradition_n but_o it_o appear_v by_o neither_o ergo._fw-la and_o his_o second_o reason_n be_v this_o christ_n neither_o do_v nor_o do_v take_v kingdom_n from_o any_o to_o who_o they_o do_v appertain_v but_o do_v rather_o establish_v they_o therefore_o when_o the_o king_n become_v a_o christian_n he_o do_v not_o lose_v his_o terrene_a kingdom_n which_o lawful_o before_o he_o enjoy_v but_o he_o obtain_v new_a right_n to_o the_o everlasting_a kingdom_n otherwise_o say_v he_o the_o benefit_n receive_v by_o christ_n shall_v be_v hurtful_a to_o king_n and_o grace_n shall_v destroy_v nature_n also_o he_o confute_v the_o ordinary_a distinction_n among_o the_o schoolman_n and_o canonist_n who_o affirm_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v both_o power_n in_o himself_o but_o do_v commit_v the_o execution_n of_o the_o civil_a